minister_n you_o cypher_n 1._o tim._n 6.12_o fight_v the_o good_a fight_n of_o faith_n lay_v hold_v on_o eternal_a life_n whereunto_o thou_o be_v call_v ibid._n lin_v 3._o to_o prove_v âhe_v scripture_n to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o spiritual_a man_n you_o âypher_n 1._o cor._n 2.15_o but_o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a judge_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o which_o prove_v the_o contrary_n if_o it_o prove_v any_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o spiritual_a man_n be_v not_o judge_v and_o rule_v by_o scripture_n but_o raâher_o the_o scripture_n be_v judge_v and_o rule_v by_o he_o pag._n â0_n lin_v 21._o to_o prove_v that_o we_o wrong_v you_o in_o saying_n âou_fw-mi derogate_v from_o the_o church_n you_o cite_v matth._n 18._o â7_n he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a &_o publican_n ibid._n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n you_o cypher_n heb._n ââ_o 17_o obey_v your_o prelate_n and_o submit_v yourself_o unto_o they_o âag_n 169._o lin_v 22._o to_o prove_v that_o no_o church_n ever_o priââd_v the_o oblation_n &_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n more_o ââghly_a and_o religious_o than_o you_o do_v you_o cypher_n heb._n â_o 14_o with_o one_o oblation_n he_o do_v consummate_v for_o ever_o the_o sanctified_a and_o ephes._n 5.2_o he_o give_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n ãâã_d we_o to_o a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n &_o john_n 1.29_o behold_v the_o âambe_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n &_o âct_n 4.12_o there_o be_v not_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o name_n pag._n â1_n lin_v 1._o to_o prove_v we_o wrong_v you_o by_o say_v you_o aââint_v that_o 126._o that_o the_o word_n of_o john_n white_a way_n pag._n 126._o every_o particular_a man_n examine_v &_o ââdge_v of_o the_o church_n &_o her_o teach_n you_o cite_v 1._o cor._n â_o 19_o be_v all_o apostle_n be_v all_o prophet_n be_v all_o teacher_n âre_n all_o worker_n of_o miracle_n if_o one_o will_v study_v to_o apâây_a scripture_n impertinent_o i_o be_o persuade_v he_o can_v âârdly_o devise_v great_a impertinencye_n than_o these_o âhich_v be_v so_o riâe_v in_o every_o page_n of_o your_o book_n so_o that_o it_o be_v intolerable_a folly_n for_o your_o poet_n and_o paynter_n to_o represent_v this_o your_o voluminous_a cypher_v of_o scripture_n with_o a_o crown_n upon_o it_o bid_v man_n to_o behâââ_n grace_n and_o wisdom_n in_o your_o look_n and_o truth_n triumphâââ_n your_o book_n for_o if_o this_o kind_n of_o cypher_v of_o scripture_n be_v wisdom_n what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o last_o extreme_a anâ_n nonplus_n of_o folly_n of_o i_o wonder_v you_o will_v not_o be_v warn_v to_o be_v more_o wise_a by_o the_o book_n of_o quaeres_fw-la or_o prurit-anus_a for_o you_o cite_v the_o scripture_n as_o impertinent_o in_o good_a earnest_n as_o he_o do_v in_o jest_n to_o show_v your_o ministerial_a folly_n folly_n you_o cite_v &_o cypher_n scripture_n that_o make_v against_o you_o §._o 8._o hereunto_o i_o add_v that_o the_o text_n you_o cypher_n many_o time_n make_v against_o you_o pag._n 548._o lin_v 19_o to_o prove_v that_o reward_n be_v give_v unto_o work_n of_o graââ_n and_o bounty_n aswell_o as_o of_o desert_n you_o cypher_n rom._n 4_o 4._o which_o say_v to_o he_o that_o work_v the_o reward_n be_v not_o reckon_v of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n can_v any_o text_n be_v devise_v more_o direct_o against_o the_o purpose_n you_o cite_v it_o for_o by_o this_o place_n join_v with_o a_o sentence_n of_o you_o i_o conclude_v unanswerable_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o merit_n the_o reward_n which_o be_v give_v to_o he_o that_o work_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n of_o his_o work_n be_v give_v not_o of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n but_o eternal_a life_n be_v term_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n because_o it_o be_v bestow_v ãâã_d they_o which_o exercise_n righteousness_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o thâ_n righteousness_n the_o true_a inherent_a dignity_n sanctity_n and_o purity_n of_o their_o work_n ergo_fw-la eternal_a life_n be_v a_o reward_n oâ_n good_a work_v give_v to_o god_n child_n of_o debt_n not_o ãâã_d mere_a grace_n and_o bounty_n the_o mayor_n be_v s._n paul_n by_o you_o cypher_v in_o this_o place_n the_o minor_a your_o ow_v in_o so_o many_o word_n pag._n 174._o in_o fine_a and_o 1â9_n so_o thââ_n the_o text_n of_o scripture_n by_o you_o cite_v prove_v invinciâbly_o the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n against_o which_o you_o cite_v iâ_n pag._n 558._o lin_v 4._o to_o prove_v that_o live_a saint_n have_v no_o communion_n with_o saint_n defunct_a by_o partake_v the_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n you_o cyte_v rom._n 12._o v._n 4._o we_o have_v many_o member_n in_o one_o body_n and_o every_o member_n have_v âot_n the_o same_o office_n this_o text_n prove_v the_o contrary_a to_o âhat_n you_o intend_v to_o wit_n that_o satisfaction_n be_v communicable_a betwixt_o saint_n for_o from_o this_o text_n i_o argue_v thus_o if_o saint_n live_v &_o saint_n decease_v be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n have_v different_a office_n than_o âhere_o must_v be_v betwixt_o they_o communion_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o superabound_v in_o some_o member_n and_o be_v neeâed_v of_o other_o for_o this_o we_o see_v to_o be_v that_o fellowship_n which_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o nature_n the_o member_n of_o âhe_n same_o body_n ought_v to_o enjoy_v the_o one_o with_o the_o oâher_n but_o the_o myrrh_n of_o mortification_n and_o satisfaction_n superabound_v in_o many_o most_o rare_a innocent_a and_o penitent_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o be_v no_o less_o need_v of_o diverse_a other_o saint_n upon_o the_o earth_n that_o have_v do_v many_o sin_n and_o can_v do_v such_o great_a penance_n therefore_o the_o myrrh_n of_o superabounding_a penance_n and_o satisfaction_n aught_o to_o flow_v down_o from_o decease_a saint_n in_o heaven_n unto_o their_o fellow-member_n the_o needy_a saint_n that_o live_v on_o earth_n the_o jesuite_n 523._o jesuite_n see_v the_o reply_n pag._n 523._o say_v that_o the_o first_o precept_n thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o lord_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o hart_n etc._n etc._n bind_v not_o man_n to_o love_n god_n in_o this_o life_n with_o beatifical_a love_n nor_o to_o be_v always_o in_o actual_a employment_n of_o his_o love_n on_o he_o but_o only_o to_o love_v sincere_o and_o inward_o to_o the_o keep_n of_o all_o commandment_n without_o any_o mortal_a offence_n which_o break_v friendship_n with_o god_n desire_v though_o not_o enjoy_v the_o happiness_n of_o beatifical_a love_n this_o he_o say_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o s._n bernard_n and_o s._n augustine_n when_o they_o say_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o next_o life_n be_v contain_v in_o this_o precept_n to_o wit_n in_o voto_fw-la not_o in_o re_fw-mi this_o doctrine_n you_o impugn_v pag._n 525._o lin_v 26._o saying_n that_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v observe_v other_o commandment_n break_v the_o first_o commandment_n and_o do_v undergo_v corporal_a pain_n after_o the_o breach_n thereof_o how_o prove_v you_o this_o marry_o you_o cypher_n heb._n 11.31_o they_o be_v stone_v they_o be_v sawen_v a_o sunder_o they_o be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n do_v this_o text_n prove_v the_o saint_n transgress_v the_o first_o commandment_n that_o they_o be_v corporal_o afflict_v for_o their_o not_o love_v god_n with_o all_o their_o hart_n do_v it_o not_o rather_o show_v the_o contrary_a that_o they_o love_v god_n perfect_o and_o be_v temporal_o torment_v because_o they_o so_o love_v he_o with_o all_o their_o hart_n that_o they_o will_v rather_o undergo_v most_o cruel_a and_o barbarous_a death_n then_o offend_v he_o or_o abandon_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v as_o our_o saviour_n say_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o charity_n pag._n 10._o lin_v 20._o you_o deny_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o her_o tradition_n and_o definition_n yet_o say_v you_o we_o acknowledge_v her_o lawful_a authority_n for_o expound_v scripture_n and_o maintain_v unity_n in_o right_a faith_n in_o proof_n hereof_o you_o cite_v matth._n 18.17_o who_o so_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n you_o can_v not_o have_v invent_v a_o text_n that_o do_v more_o invincible_o show_v the_o contrary_a of_o what_o you_o intend_v let_v we_o make_v this_o text_n of_o scripture_n the_o mayor_n and_o your_o protestant_a doctrine_n the_o minor_a and_o put_v your_o argument_n in_o form_n then_o will_v you_o see_v how_o handsome_o you_o prove_v that_o you_o acknowledge_v all_o the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o scripture_n say_v the_o church_n be_v of_o so_o great_a &_o absolute_a &_o infallible_a authority_n that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o hear_v she_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n protestant_n say_v the_o church_n be_v so_o subject_a to_o
be_v so_o adorn_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a as_o the_o true_a become_v indiscernible_a from_o it_o but_o if_o the_o roman_a be_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_a tradition_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o tradition_n be_v hide_v yea_o a_o false_a church_n have_v so_o clear_o the_o mark_n of_o catholic_a that_o no_o other_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n pretend_v to_o be_v rather_o catholic_a then_o it_o that_o be_v to_o have_v doctrine_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o whole_a world_n of_o christian_a father_n unto_o whole_a world_n of_o christian_a child_n hence_o either_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o know_v assure_o the_o save_a truth_n or_o else_o the_o mean_n be_v immediate_a revelation_n that_o be_v inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n without_o any_o external_a infallible_a mean_n or_o else_o scripture_n know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o true_o sense_v by_o the_o light_n lustre_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o way_n of_o teach_v it_o be_v certain_a god_n do_v not_o use_v towards_o his_o militant_a church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n for_o teach_v of_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a truth_n by_o the_o light_n lustre_n and_o shine_v of_o the_o thing_n or_o doctrine_n be_v proper_a unto_o the_o church_n triumphant_a inward_a assurance_n without_o any_o external_a infallible_a ground_n to_o assure_v man_n of_o truth_n be_v proper_a unto_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o first_o publisher_n of_o christian_a religion_n hence_o i_o conclude_v that_o if_o god_n be_v the_o prime_a verity_n teach_v christian_a religion_n dark_o without_o make_v man_n see_v the_o light_n and_o lustre_n of_o thing_n believe_v and_o mediate_o by_o some_o external_a infallible_a mean_n upon_o which_o inward_a assurance_n must_v rely_v then_o he_o must_v ever_o conserve_v the_o catholic_a tradition_n and_o church_n visible_a and_o conspicuous_a that_o the_o same_o may_v without_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o otherwise_o they_o by_o the_o lustre_n of_o doctrine_n be_v discern_v to_o wit_n by_o sensible_a mark_n if_o any_o object_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o man_n in_o this_o search_n may_v be_v deceive_v through_o natural_a invincible_a fallibility_n of_o their_o organ_n and_o so_o no_o ground_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v altogether_o infallible_a i_o answer_v that_o evidence_n have_v by_o sense_n be_v but_o the_o private_a of_o one_o man_n be_v natural_o and_o physical_o infallible_a but_o when_o the_o same_o be_v also_o public_a and_o catholic_a that_o be_v when_o a_o whole_a world_n of_o man_n concur_v with_o he_o than_o his_o evidence_n be_v altogether_o infallible_a beside_o see_v god_n have_v resolve_v not_o to_o teach_v man_n immediate_o but_o will_v have_v they_o to_o cleave_v unto_o a_o external_a infallible_a mean_n &_o to_o find_v out_o this_o mean_n by_o the_o sensible_a evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n he_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o veracity_n to_o assist_v man_n sense_n with_o his_o providence_n that_o therein_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v when_o they_o use_v such_o diligence_n as_o man_n ordinary_o use_v that_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o their_o sense_n now_o what_o great_a evidence_n can_v one_o have_v that_o he_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o this_o matter_n of_o sense_n that_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n be_v the_o catholic_a that_o be_v doctrine_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o world_n of_o christian_a ancestor_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n unanimous_a among_o themselves_o in_o all_o matter_n they_o believe_v as_o faith_n what_o great_a assurance_n i_o say_v can_v one_o have_v that_o herein_o he_o see_v aright_o than_o a_o whole_a world_n of_o man_n profess_v to_o see_v the_o same_o that_o he_o do_v some_o may_v again_o object_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n set_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n but_o faith_n be_v resolution_n about_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v i_o answer_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v visible_a according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n &_o yet_o invisible_a according_a to_o the_o manner_n it_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o creed_n the_o three_o article_n he_o suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v evident_a unto_o sense_n and_o see_v even_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o be_v now_o believe_v of_o their_o posterity_n but_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o creed_n to_o wit_n that_o herein_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o his_o ancient_a prophet_n be_v fulfil_v that_o this_o be_v do_v in_o charity_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n i_o say_v that_o visible_a article_n be_v invisible_a and_o believe_v in_o the_o creed_n in_o like_a manner_n that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o catholic_a church_n pagan_n jew_n &_o heretic_n if_o they_o shut_v not_o their_o eye_n against_o the_o light_n do_v clear_o behold_v but_o that_o herein_o the_o word_n of_o god_n about_o the_o perpetual_a amplitude_n of_o his_o church_n be_v accomplish_v that_o this_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o god_n veracity_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o mean_n to_o learn_v save_v truth_n may_v not_o be_v hide_v this_o be_v a_o thing_n invisible_a &_o according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v propose_v in_o the_o creed_n second_o proposition_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v invisible_a according_a to_o the_o predicate_v or_o thing_n believe_v but_o not_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o subject_n or_o thing_n whereof_o we_o believe_v the_o thing_n the_o apostle_n believe_v of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v thing_n invisible_a but_o the_o subject_n and_o person_n of_o who_o they_o do_v believe_v be_v to_o they_o visible_a &_o see_v yea_o god_n do_v of_o purpose_n by_o his_o prophet_n foretell_v certain_a token_n whereby_o that_o subject_n may_v by_o sense_n be_v see_v and_o discern_v from_o all_o other_o that_o may_v pretend_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n or_o else_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n to_o teach_v the_o truth_n have_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n in_o this_o sort_n the_o predicate_a or_o thing_n believe_v in_o this_o article_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n holy_a be_v invisible_a but_o the_o subject_n to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a church_n which_o we_o affirm_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v holy_a in_o her_o doctrine_n be_v visible_a and_o conspicuous_a unto_o all_o yea_o god_n have_v of_o purpose_n foretell_v sign_n and_o token_n whereby_o the_o same_o by_o sense_n may_v be_v clear_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o that_o may_v pretend_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a for_o be_v not_o this_o subject_n the_o catholic_a church_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v holy_a and_o infallible_a in_o her_o teach_n visible_a and_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o that_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o what_o use_n be_v it_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o infallible_a teach_a church_n in_o the_o world_n hide_a we_o know_v not_o where_o as_o a_o needle_n in_o a_o bottle_n of_o hay_n the_o end_n of_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n these_o thing_n suppose_v the_o reader_n will_v have_v no_o difficulty_n to_o discern_v how_o frivolous_a the_o minister_n exception_n be_v against_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o believe_a doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n into_o perpetual_a tradition_n and_o how_o solid_a the_o jesuit_n discourse_n be_v which_o here_o ensue_v the_o first_o ground_n that_o a_o christian_a resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o perpetual_a tradition_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n §._o 1._o before_o i_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o principle_n some_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v presuppose_v which_o i_o think_v protestant_n will_v not_o deny_v first_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v or_o attain_v to_o the_o blissful_a vision_n of_o god_n without_o firm_a and_o assure_a apprehension_n of_o divine_a &_o supernatural_a truth_n concern_v his_o last_o end_n and_o the_o mean_n to_o arrive_v thereunto_o second_o that_o this_o assure_a apprehension_n be_v not_o have_v by_o a_o doctrine_n a_o the_o minister_n here_o grant_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o have_v by_o clear_a &_o evident_a sight_n but_o afterward_o he_o say_v the_o same_o be_v resolve_v by_o the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n clear_a and_o evident_a sight_n nor_o get_v by_o demonstration_n or_o humane_a discourse_n by_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n nor_o can_v be_v sufficient_o have_v by_o credit_n give_v to_o mere_o humane_a authority_n but_o only_o by_o faith_n ground_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reveal_v unto_o man_n thing_n that_o otherwise_o be_v know_v only_o to_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n three_o that_o god_n
to_o wit_n to_o be_v true_a to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n to_o be_v preach_v and_o deliver_v of_o the_o apostle_n the_o high_a ground_n by_o which_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v true_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o the_o high_a ground_n on_o which_o i_o be_o resolve_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v reveal_v be_v the_o credit_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n jesus_n &_o his_o apostle_n who_o deliver_v the_o same_o as_o divine_a and_o sacred_a but_o the_o high_a ground_n that_o move_v i_o to_o believe_v that_o my_o faith_n be_v 5._o be_v the_o minister_n and_o especial_o the_o bishop_n chaplin_n pag._n 16._o &_o 17._o charge_n the_o answerer_n to_o resolve_v faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n into_o only_a tradition_n this_o be_v a_o slander_n for_o he_o do_v distinguish_v express_o in_o scripture_n the_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n or_o his_o word_n this_o second_o property_n be_v spiritual_a and_o hide_a and_o believe_v not_o upon_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n direct_o but_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o affirm_v confirm_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o to_o be_v preach_v and_o plant_v in_o the_o world_n be_v a_o public_a sensible_a thing_n &_o so_o be_v know_v by_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n thus_o the_o church_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a be_v build_v upon_o god_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o god_n be_v build_v on_o the_o apostle_n as_o believe_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n be_v build_v on_o the_o tradition_n of_o pastor_n succeed_v they_o the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n by_o office_n as_o our_o minister_n grant_n pag._n 9_o lin_v 5._o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n that_o so_o teach_v i_o into_o this_o principle_n 5._o principle_n aug._n count_v epist_n fund_z cap._n 5._o saint_n augustine_n resolve_v his_o faith_n against_o the_o manichee_n who_o pretend_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v be_v corrupt_v confute_v they_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n affirm_v that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n do_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n induce_v he_o assign_v this_o as_o the_o last_o stay_n of_o his_o resolution_n in_o this_o point_n for_o though_o he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v soveraigne_o certain_a and_o true_a upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o as_o sacred_a preach_v it_o yet_o that_o this_o gospel_n as_o we_o have_v it_o come_v incorrupt_a from_o the_o apostle_n he_o can_v have_v no_o strong_a or_o more_o scripture_n more_o the_o minister_n force_v by_o this_o testimony_n grant_v two_o thing_n which_o overthrow_n his_o cause_n first_o pa._n 22._o l._n 13.14_o that_o novice_n and_o simple_a person_n ground_n their_o faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o field_n grant_v appendix_n part_n 1._o pag._n 11._o now_o i_o assume_v but_o the_o faith_n of_o novice_n be_v save_v faith_n as_o s._n aug._n there_o say_v contra_fw-la epist._n fundamenti_fw-la c._n 2._o and_o consequent_o their_o faith_n be_v divine_a ergo_fw-la save_v &_o supernatural_a faith_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n second_o he_o grant_n pag._n 23._o lin_v 2._o &_o 3._o that_o the_o church_n as_o include_v the_o apostle_n can_v prove_v the_o scripture_n whence_o it_o be_v consequent_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o principle_n know_v by_o themselves_o but_o have_v another_o high_a divine_a principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v prove_v the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o apostle_n be_v as_o protestant_n grant_v field_n l._n 4._o of_o church_n c._n 21._o of_o great_a authority_n than_o scripture_n excellent_a proof_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n descend_v by_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n neither_o can_v we_o imagine_v a_o high_a except_o we_o fly_v to_o particular_a &_o private_a revelation_n which_o be_v absurd_a the_o second_o argument_n second_o i_o prove_v that_o common_a unlearned_a people_n the_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n be_v persuade_v about_o all_o substantial_a point_n of_o faith_n by_o tradition_n not_o by_o scripture_n common_a &_o unlearned_a people_n have_v true_a christian_a faith_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n but_o they_o have_v not_o faith_n of_o all_o these_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n ground_v on_o scripture_n for_o they_o can_v neither_o understand_v nor_o read_v any_o scripture_n but_o translate_v into_o vulgar_a language_n &_o so_o if_o they_o believe_v upon_o scrpture_n they_o believe_v upon_o scripture_n translate_v into_o their_o mother_n tongue_n but_o before_o that_o they_o can_v know_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v even_o in_o all_o substantial_a point_n that_o so_o they_o may_v build_v on_o it_o they_o must_v first_o know_v what_o be_v the_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n &_o translate_v &_o to_o this_o proof_n that_o christian_n believe_v their_o creed_n more_o firm_o than_o any_o translation_n the_o minister_n have_v not_o answer_v one_o word_n nor_o can_v answer_v for_o it_o be_v convince_a as_o appear_v by_o this_o syllogism_n persuasion_n more_o certain_a and_o firm_a can_v be_v ground_v on_o persuasion_n less_o firm_a and_o certain_a such_o as_o be_v true_a christian_n believe_v the_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n more_o firm_o than_o they_o do_v that_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v into_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n ergo_fw-la true_a christian_n do_v not_o build_v their_o faith_n of_o the_o creed_n on_o scripture_n translate_v but_o on_o doctrine_n know_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n former_o and_o more_o firm_o than_o that_o scripture_n be_v true_o translate_v firm_o believe_v they_o so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n translate_v against_o they_o for_o if_o they_o know_v they_o not_o before_o how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o scripture_n in_o place_n that_o concern_v they_o be_v true_o translate_v if_o they_o do_v not_o before_o hand_n firm_o believe_v they_o why_o shall_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o allow_v translation_n that_o agree_v with_o they_o and_o to_o reject_v the_o translation_n that_o differ_v from_o they_o ergo_fw-la believe_v ergo_fw-la the_o minister_n pag._n 26._o say_v that_o ignorant_a man_n resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o scripture_n yet_o not_o into_o scripture_n so_o distinct_o know_v as_o they_o can_v tell_v the_o name_n of_o the_o several_a book_n author_n and_o section_n and_o so_o they_o resolve_v implicit_o not_o explicit_o this_o be_v idle_a for_o if_o they_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v write_v though_o they_o know_v not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o book_n nor_o number_n of_o the_o chapter_n &_o verse_n nor_o the_o formal_a text_n what_o ground_n firm_a they_o their_o creed_n have_v they_o this_o to_o believe_v original_o &_o before_o they_o know_v any_o scripture_n they_o have_v faith_n ground_v on_o the_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n by_o the_o light_n whereof_o they_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o translation_n about_o such_o substantial_a point_n as_o they_o firm_o believe_v by_o tradition_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o protestant_n must_v mean_v if_o they_o have_v any_o true_a meaning_n when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o common_a people_n know_v scripture_n to_o be_v true_o translate_v by_o the_o translate_v the_o the_o minister_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v to_o a_o find_a paradox_n confute_v already_o that_o unlearned_a rustic_n know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n by_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o the_o book_n and_o by_o see_v the_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n pag._n 28._o lin_v 3._o he_o add_v lin_v 7._o that_o they_o which_o actual_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n do_v virtual_o &_o mediate_o resolve_v the_o same_o into_o the_o very_a scripture_n though_o they_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o scripture_n this_o be_v frivolous_a and_o false_a for_o the_o pagan_a and_o infidel_n that_o know_v honey_n to_o be_v sweet_a and_o take_v in_o abundance_n to_o be_v hurtful_a shall_v virtual_o resolve_v their_o persuasion_n into_o the_o very_a scripture_n because_o they_o actual_o believe_v a_o thing_n affirm_v in_o scripture_n prou._n 25._o 27._o yea_o the_o jew_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v believe_v a_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n do_v he_o therefore_o resolve_v and_o build_v virtual_o upon_o scripture_n no._n that_o one_o build_v on_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o
of_o the_o church_n disagree_v about_o matter_n which_o they_o preach_v as_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v their_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n be_v of_o credit_n therein_o or_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o persuade_v who_o will_v or_o can_v firm_o believe_v disagree_v witness_n upon_o their_o word_n and_o this_o truth_n this_o by_o this_o note_n protestant_n be_v convince_v not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o protestant_a church_n allow_v that_o dissonant_n doctrine_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n she_o permit_v that_o her_o preacher_n condemn_v each_o other_o as_o heretic_n without_o disclaim_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o either_o side_n for_o she_o embrace_v in_o her_o communion_n both_o lutheran_n who_o preach_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o carnal_a manducation_n of_o christ_n true_a body_n by_o the_o wicked_a luther_n tom_n 3._o germ._n fol._n 264._o and_o caluinist_n who_o detest_v this_o carnal_a manducation_n as_o blasphemous_a and_o impious_a caluin_n admonit_fw-la 3._o ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n that_o allow_v of_o dissonant_n preach_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o how_o can_v she_o be_v the_o one_o true_a church_n which_o allow_v that_o doctrine_n she_o know_v to_o be_v false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o religion_n &_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n the_o protestant_a church_n know_v that_o of_o contrary_a doctrine_n the_o one_o side_n must_v needs_o be_v false_a therefore_o consent_v that_o both_o side_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o faith_n &_o as_o save_v truth_n she_o yield_v that_o doctrine_n knowne_o false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n and_o save_a truth_n and_o so_o be_v mistress_n of_o falsehood_n as_o much_o as_o of_o truth_n consent_n must_v be_v conspicuous_a and_o evident_a for_o if_o in_o outward_a appearance_n and_o show_n preacher_n dissent_v one_o from_o another_o in_o main_n &_o material_a doctrine_n their_o authority_n be_v craze_v and_o their_o testimony_n of_o no_o esteem_n howsoever_o perchance_o their_o dissension_n may_v be_v by_o some_o distinction_n so_o colour_v that_o one_o can_v reader_n can_v one_o can_v convince_v a_o obstinate_a gaynsayer_n &_o wrester_n of_o word_n but_o still_o he_o will_v wrangle_v yet_o may_v he_o be_v convince_v that_o he_o do_v falsify_v and_o wrong_v author_n in_o his_o interpretation_n and_o this_o evident_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o indifferent_a reader_n convince_v he_o that_o will_v bold_o undertake_v to_o defend_v as_o 42_o as_o d._n field_n lib._n 3._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 42_o doctor_n field_n undertake_v for_o protestant_n that_o their_o dissension_n be_v but_o verbal_a but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n do_v the_o accuse_a dissentioner_n allow_v this_o doctor_n reconciliation_n do_v they_o give_v over_o contention_n thereupon_o no_o but_o profess_v that_o such_o reconciler_n miss_v of_o their_o meaning_n &_o that_o they_o disagree_v substantial_o about_o the_o very_a prime_a article_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v these_o man_n be_v witness_n of_o credit_n for_o substantial_a article_n concern_v which_o there_o be_v open_o confess_v &_o profess_a dissension_n among_o they_o five_o i_o infer_v that_o this_o church_n be_v universal_a spread_v over_o all_o nation_n that_o she_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o moral_o where_o moral_o that_o be_v according_a unto_o common_a humane_a reputation_n by_o which_o a_o thing_n diffuse_v over_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n &_o famous_o know_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 1.12_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o church_n be_v still_o universal_a and_o every_o where_o by_o this_o be_v answer_v all_o the_o minister_n bring_v upon_o mistake_v of_o moral_o moral_o speak_v be_v so_o diffuse_v that_o the_o whole_a know_a world_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o she_o as_o of_o a_o worthy_a and_o credible_a witness_n of_o christian_a tradition_n howsoever_o her_o outward_a glory_n and_o splendour_n peace_n and_o tranquillity_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v in_o some_o place_n more_o or_o less_o and_o not_o ever_o in_o all_o place_n at_o once_o a_o truth_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o may_v be_v evident_o prove_v out_o of_o 34.37_o of_o the_o text_n apocalyps_n 20.8_o say_v they_o the_o pursevamt_n of_o antichrist_n go_v upon_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v about_o the_o camp_n of_o saint_n &_o belove_a city_n which_o place_n prove_v clear_o that_o the_o church_n and_o camp_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n this_o verse_n the_o minister_n mistake_v of_o purpose_n and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o cit_v the_o seven_o and_o very_o absurd_o say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v persecute_v christian_n that_o be_v put_v they_o in_o prison_n &_o kill_v they_o where_o they_o be_v not_o and_o protestant_n themselves_o affirm_v that_o even_o all_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v right_o famous_a &_o continue_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n bullinger_n in_o apocal._n 20._o fulke_o against_o the_o rhem._n in_o thess._n 2._o sect_n 5._o whitaker_n answer_n to_o m._n reynols_n preface_n p_o 34.37_o scripture_n apoc._n 20._o v._o 8._o that_o even_o in_o antichrists_n day_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v visible_o universal_a for_o she_o shall_v they_o be_v every_o where_o persecute_v which_o can_v not_o be_v except_o she_o be_v every_o where_o visible_a &_o conspicuous_a even_o to_o the_o wicked_a the_o reason_n of_o this_o perpetual_a visible_a universality_n be_v because_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o sole_a ordinary_a mean_n on_o which_o we_o ground_n faith_n for_o substantial_a point_n wherefore_o this_o tradition_n must_v be_v so_o deliver_v as_o it_o may_v be_v know_v to_o all_o man_n see_v god_n thereof_o god_n the_o minister_n say_v p._n 78._o l._n 22._o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v according_a to_o his_o antecedent_n will_v cite_v schoolman_n that_o say_v that_o god_n antecedent_n will_n be_v only_o a_o velleity_n a_o wish_n a_o complacence_n thence_o conclude_v that_o though_o god_n have_v antecedent_n will_v that_o all_o be_v save_v yet_o this_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o he_o always_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n by_o his_o antecedent_n will_v of_o man_n salvation_n wish_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n second_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o mean_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_a that_o all_o man_n in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o have_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o end_n to_o wit_n the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o as_o schoolman_n say_v virtual_o conditional_a that_o be_v god_n have_v a_o will_n that_o all_o man_n be_v save_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o if_o the_o course_n of_o his_o providence_n be_v not_o stop_v and_o man_n will_v cooperate_v with_o his_o grace_n whence_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o god_n do_v not_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o all_o man_n it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o on_o his_o part_n he_o wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o but_o even_o our_o minister_n pag._n 78._o lin_v 38._o grant_n that_o god_n wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n and_o of_o every_o individual_a person_n therefore_o god_n still_o make_v his_o church_n visible_o universal_a ut_fw-la neminem_fw-la lateat_fw-la as_o say_v s._n augustine_n that_o no_o man_n perish_v through_o the_o hiddennes_n and_o invisibility_n thereof_o will_v have_v all_o man_n without_o exception_n of_o any_o nation_n to_o be_v save_v &_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 2.4_o but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o still_o so_o diffuse_v in_o the_o world_n that_o all_o know_a church_n know_a the_o answerer_n write_v to_o his_o majesty_n &_o know_v the_o proverb_n sapienti_fw-la verbum_fw-la do_v intend_v by_o this_o word_n to_o insinuate_v how_o god_n provide_v mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o world_n whereof_o one_o part_n be_v many_o age_n unknown_a the_o solution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n much_o urge_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 78_o consist_v in_o these_o point_n first_o god_n our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v and_o die_v in_o this_o know_a world_n provide_v that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v still_o visible_o spread_v over_o the_o same_o &_o famous_o know_v second_o nation_n be_v not_o so_o unknown_a but_o by_o navigation_n and_o other_o such_o natural_a mean_n they_o may_v be_v discoveuer_v unto_o this_o world_n where_o our_o
teach_v it_o as_o christ_n command_v &_o deliver_v the_o same_o three_o if_o this_o promise_n be_v conditional_a &_o not_o absolute_a then_o by_o this_o place_n the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v to_o last_v absolute_o for_o ever_o but_o only_o so_o long_o as_o she_o christen_v aright_o &_o teach_v the_o truth_n wherein_o according_a to_o this_o protestant_a exposition_n she_o may_v fail_v but_o the_o father_n from_o this_o text_n gather_v against_o the_o donatist_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o fail_v to_o be_v in_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o end_n thereof_o as_o s._n aug._n in_o psalm_n 101._o conc_fw-fr 2._o leo_fw-la epist._n 3._o ad_fw-la pulcheriam_fw-la and_o other_o hence_o prove_v therefore_o the_o sense_n be_v absolute_a his_o church_n shall_v be_v still_o in_o the_o world_n &_o he_o still_o assist_v his_o church_n by_o his_o spirit_n to_o teach_v and_o baptize_v aright_o promise_n of_o wonderful_a comfort_n unto_o they_o that_o pawn_v their_o soul_n &_o salvation_n upon_o god_n word_n deliver_v by_o perpetual_a tradition_n for_o in_o this_o sentence_n appear_v the_o six_o thing_n i_o before_o set_v down_o first_o that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o christian_a church_n all_o day_n not_o want_v in_o the_o world_n so_o much_o as_o one_o day_n till_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n second_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a for_o the_o church_n that_o always_o teach_v &_o christen_v all_o nation_n must_v needs_o be_v visible_a but_o this_o church_n always_o teach_v and_o christen_v all_o nation_n i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o not_o with_o you_o sit_v in_o corner_n or_o hide_v under_o ground_n but_o with_o you_o exercise_v the_o office_n enjoin_v you_o in_o the_o word_n precedent_n docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la baptizantes_fw-la three_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o apostolical_a for_o to_o his_o apostle_n christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n not_o with_o you_o in_o your_o own_o person_n but_o with_o you_o in_o your_o successor_n in_o who_o you_o shall_v continue_v until_o the_o world_n end_n ergo_fw-la a_o lawful_a company_n of_o bishop_n pastor_n &_o doctor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n must_v be_v perpetual_o in_o the_o world_n forthly_a this_o church_n be_v universal_a item_fw-la in_o mundum_fw-la universum_fw-la where_o i_o will_v be_v always_o with_o you_o five_o this_o church_n be_v one_o not_o divide_v into_o part_n because_o it_o teach_v and_o believe_v uniform_o all_o that_o christ_n deliver_v and_o command_v without_o faction_n sect_n or_o part_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n six_o this_o church_n be_v always_o holy_a for_o doctrine_n never_o deliver_v or_o teach_v any_o falsehood_n i_o who_o be_o the_o truth_n be_o always_o with_o you_o teach_v all_o nation_n holy_a also_o for_o life_n christ_n the_o holy_a of_o holye_n assist_v and_o make_v her_o able_a to_o convert_v infidel_n which_o she_o can_v not_o well_o do_v luther_n do_v the_o minister_n p._n 85._o &_o 86.102_o allege_v diverse_a father_n &_o scholman_n to_o prove_v that_o now_o miracle_n be_v cease_v &_o not_o necessary_a answer_n the_o minister_n shall_v distinguish_v as_o the_o father_n do_v who_o make_v two_o manner_n of_o being_n of_o miracle_n to_o wit_n ordinary_a &_o extraordinary_a and_o affirm_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n miracle_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o plant_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o world_n joan._n 5.24_o act._n 4.29.30_o and_o then_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v ordinary_o annex_v unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o preach_v yea_o so_o that_o every_o christian_a common_o have_v that_o gift_n in_o some_o kind_n or_o other_o 1._o cor._n 12.28_o act._n 8.17_o &_o 10._o 4.6_o second_o that_o since_o the_o plant_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o twelve_o fisherman_n this_o be_v the_o miracle_n of_o miracle_n no_o further_a miracle_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o man_n unto_o who_o this_o be_v know_v and_o therefore_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v cease_v to_o be_v ordinary_o annex_v to_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v or_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n as_o before_o it_o be_v aug._n de_fw-fr civit._n l._n 22._o c._n 8._o gregor_n 27._o moral_n c._n 1._o three_o notwithstanding_o in_o all_o age_n there_o be_v be_v and_o shall_v ever_o be_v some_o special_a place_n and_o person_n extraordinary_o endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o christian_n conversion_n of_o some_o remote_a nation_n that_o know_v not_o the_o first_o miraculous_a plant_n of_o our_o religion_n by_o certain_a &_o celebrious_a fame_n &_o of_o miracle_n in_o this_o kind_a the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n &_o all_o christian_a history_n be_v full_a see_v s._n aug._n l._n 22._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 8._o &_o gregory_n in_o his_o dialogue_n the_o protestant_a church_n not_o before_o luther_n without_o miracle_n and_o token_n of_o wonderful_a sanctity_n at_o the_o least_o in_o she_o more_o eminent_a preacher_n that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n from_o &_o by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o receyve_v the_o tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n §._o 5._o this_o ground_n be_v lay_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n cleave_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n the_o first_o argument_n there_o must_v always_o be_v in_o the_o world_n one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n that_o be_v a_o church_n deliver_v doctrine_n uniform_o thereby_o make_v they_o credible_a universal_o thereby_o make_v they_o famous_o know_v to_o mankind_n holy_o so_o make_v they_o certain_a &_o such_o as_o on_o they_o we_o may_v secure_o rely_v apostolical_o so_o make_v they_o perpetual_o flow_v without_o change_n unto_o the_o present_a christianity_n in_o the_o channel_n of_o a_o never-interrupted_n succession_n of_o bishopp_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o church_n 13._o church_n unto_o this_o argument_n the_o minister_n pag._n 104._o make_v answer_v that_o his_o protestant_a church_n be_v before_o luther_n in_o essence_n &_o kind_n though_o it_o begin_v in_o luther_n touch_v the_o name_n and_o some_o thing_n accidental_a in_o proof_n whereof_o he_o thus_o write_v in_o all_o age_n before_o luther_n some_o person_n hold_v the_o substantial_a article_n of_o our_o religion_n both_o in_o the_o roman_a &_o grecian_a church_n and_o by_o name_n the_o grecian_n maintain_v with_o we_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v no_o primacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n above_o or_o over_o all_o other_o church_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o infallible_a in_o faith_n they_o deny_v purgatory_n private_a mass_n sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o they_o propugne_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n in_o this_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o waldense_n thaborites_n of_o bohemia_n wickliffiâts_v mantayn_v the_o same_o doctrine_n in_o substance_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o learned_a pontifician_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o all_o the_o minister_n have_v say_v or_o can_v say_v for_o his_o church_n before_o luther_n the_o same_o be_v insufficient_a false_a more_o for_o anabaptist_n than_o protestant_n this_o i_o prove_v in_o general_a this_o pedigree_n be_v insufficient_a for_o two_o reason_n first_o because_o it_o be_v not_o for_o all_o age_n the_o grecian_n be_v unite_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o the_o year_n 1060._o the_o waldensian_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n 1160._o now_o there_o remain_v six_o or_o seven_o age_n since_o the_o pretend_a apostasy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o which_o the_o minister_n do_v not_o name_v any_o professor_n that_o be_v protestant_n for_o essence_n and_o kind_n second_o because_o protestant_n teach_v that_o the_o most_o substantial_a article_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v justification_n by_o special_a faith_n only_o and_o not_o by_o work_n and_o merit_n of_o grace_n as_o all_o know_v but_o these_o pretend_a professor_n namely_o the_o waldense_n &_o wickliffist_n hold_v rigorous_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n in_o so_o much_o as_o wickliff_n say_v let_v every_o man_n confide_v in_o his_o merit_n for_o which_o saying_n he_o be_v refute_v by_o the_o catholic_a author_n thomas_n waldensis_n tom._n 3._o c._n 7.8.9_o grecian_n no_o protestant_n in_o essence_n in_o particular_a the_o pedigree_n be_v notorious_o false_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o grecian_n who_o can_v without_o impudence_n be_v name_v as_o protestant_n according_a to_o essence_n and_o kind_n first_o they_o hold_v damnable_a heresye_n and_o substantial_a error_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n so_o wit_n invocation_n of_o saint_n adoration_n of_o image_n as_o they_o profess_v in_o their_o censure_n
christian_n behave_v themselves_o towards_o it_o say_v flecte_fw-la genus_fw-la lignumque_fw-la crucis_fw-la venerabile_fw-la adora_fw-la bow_v knee_n adore_v the_o cross_n sacred_a wood_n origen_n homil._n 6._o in_o epist._n ad_fw-la rom._n so_o great_a be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o if_o it_o be_v place_v before_o the_o eye_n and_o faithful_o retain_v in_o mind_n fix_v upon_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o army_n of_o sin_n &_o flesh_n be_v conquer_v s._n gregory_n call_v illuminator_fw-la who_o convert_v armenia_n do_v as_o euthim._n panop_n part_n 3._o tit_n 20._o relate_v place_v wooden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o the_o shrine_n of_o martyr_n bid_v the_o multitude_n of_o people_n that_o thither_o resort_v to_o give_v worship_n unto_o god_n by_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o crosse._n s._n procopius_n martyr_n as_o do_v witness_n nicephorus_n l._n 7._o c._n 15._o do_v adore_v a_o golden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n crucify_v &_o by_o it_o get_v great_a victory_n in_o the_o second_o age_n in_o the_o beginning_n whereof_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n live_v tertull._n in_o apol._n c._n 44._o writing_n against_o heathen_n that_o object_v that_o christian_n be_v worshipper_n of_o the_o wooden_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n grant_n the_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a &_o defend_v the_o same_o yea_o the_o protestant_a magdeburgians_n centur._n 5._o c._n 6._o acknowledge_v that_o such_o cross_n of_o wood_n be_v then_o among_o christian_n frequent_o use_v &_o set_v up_o in_o church_n s._n ignatius_n epist_n ad_fw-la philip._n do_v acknowledge_v divine_a power_n &_o virtue_n in_o the_o image_n of_o the_o crosse._n it_o be_v say_v he_o the_o victorious_a trophy_n or_o the_o monument_n of_o christ_n victory_n against_o the_o devil_n quod_fw-la ubi_fw-la viderit_fw-la horret_fw-la s._n martial_a epist._n ad_fw-la burdeg_n l._n 8._o exhort_v christian_n still_o to_o have_v the_o cross_n before_o they_o in_o ment_fw-la in_o over_o in_fw-la signo_fw-la in_o mind_n in_o mouth_n in_o the_o image_n thereof_o this_o be_v the_o invincible_a armour_n of_o a_o christian_a against_o satan_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v ever_o famous_a in_o the_o christian_a church_n whereof_o one_o be_v cite_v in_o 2._o nicen_n synod_n which_o say_v let_v not_o the_o faithful_a be_v deceyve_v by_o idol_n but_o paint_v the_o divine_a humane_a unmingled_a image_n of_o the_o true_a god_n our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n &_o of_o his_o servant_n against_o pagan_n &_o jew_n that_o so_o they_o neither_o go_v astray_o unto_o idol_n nor_o be_v like_o the_o jew_n final_o that_o these_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_v be_v use_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n by_o their_o allowance_n the_o jesuite_n prove_v by_o the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o 3.1_o so_o clear_o as_o you_o be_v force_v to_o say_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v not_o signify_v to_o depaint_v against_o all_o lexicon_n against_o the_o principal_a protestant_n that_o so_o translate_v yea_o against_o yourself_o and_o yet_o you_o wonder_v at_o your_o adversary_n wondrous_a weakness_n the_o second_o and_z third_z point_n 2._o praying_n &_o offer_v oblation_n to_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n 3._o worship_v &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n i_o have_v join_v these_o two_o controversye_n together_o hope_v i_o may_v do_v it_o with_o your_o majesty_n good_a like_n the_o main_a difficulty_n of_o they_o both_o be_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n for_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v that_o if_o your_o majesty_n do_v allow_v of_o invocation_n of_o any_o saint_n you_o will_v never_o deny_v that_o devotion_n unto_o the_o b._n virgin_n mother_n of_o god_n 402._o opera_fw-la regius_fw-la respon_n ad_fw-la ep_n card._n peron_n p._n 402._o who_o you_o honour_v and_o reverence_n above_o the_o rest_n though_o perchance_o you_o may_v dislike_v some_o particular_a form_n of_o our_o prayer_n that_o seem_v to_o give_v her_o title_n above_o that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o a_o creature_n about_o which_o i_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n endeavour_v to_o give_v your_o majesty_n satisfaction_n in_o which_o question_n i_o will_v suppose_v without_o large_a and_o particular_a proof_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v it_o by_o testimony_n undeniable_a if_o need_v be_v that_o worship_n &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n have_v be_v general_o receive_v in_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n at_o least_o ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n here_o the_o minister_n either_o out_o of_o ignorance_n or_o rather_o out_o of_o desire_n to_o outface_v the_o truth_n write_v in_o this_o sort_n pag._n 290._o you_o presuppose_v that_o which_o notwithstanding_o your_o outface_v you_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v universal_o receive_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n faith_n this_o discourse_n follow_v be_v a_o addition_n wherein_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n thus_o he_o wherefore_o aswell_o because_o the_o matter_n be_v important_a as_o also_o to_o take_v away_o this_o tergiversation_n i_o will_v here_o make_v good_a the_o answerers_n word_n and_o demonstrate_v that_o all_o the_o father_n some_o one_o way_n some_o another_o have_v testify_v to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n a_o eleven_o demonstration_n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_a church_n do_v ever_o hold_v invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n §_o 1._o to_o accomplish_v this_o more_o clear_o and_o with_o less_o tediousness_n unto_o the_o reader_n i_o shall_v reduce_v the_o father_n say_v unto_o a_o eleven_o head_n &_o which_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o eleven_o different_a argument_n &_o demonstration_n of_o this_o truth_n the_o first_o demonstration_n if_o the_o father_n hold_v the_o doctrine_n that_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v invocate_v &_o that_o man_n be_v aid_v by_o their_o merit_n as_o certain_a &_o infallible_a than_o they_o hold_v it_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o reveal_v truth_n for_o on_o what_o other_o ground_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v they_o pretend_v to_o hold_v it_o as_o certain_a the_o same_o not_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o father_n teach_v this_o doctrine_n as_o a_o matter_n certain_a and_o infallible_a &_o not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o by_o christian_n as_o their_o word_n declare_v s_o augustine_n adiwari_fw-la augustine_n augustine_n de_fw-fr curâ_n pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la cap._n 16._o illa_fw-la quaestio_fw-la vires_fw-la superat_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la meae_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la martyr_n opitulentur_fw-la ijs_fw-la quos_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la certum_fw-la est_fw-la adiwari_fw-la this_o question_n be_v beyond_o the_o reach_n of_o my_o knowledge_n how_o martyr_n help_v they_o who_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o help_v and_o again_o intercedunt_fw-la again_o idem_fw-la serm_n 244._o tunc_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la absque_fw-la ulla_fw-la dubitatione_n sancti_fw-la martyr_n intercedunt_fw-la then_o without_o any_o doubt_n the_o holy_a martyr_n intercede_v for_o we_o when_o they_o find_v in_o we_o some_o part_n of_o their_o virtue_n s._n ambrose_n facietis_fw-la ambrose_n ambros._n ser._n 91._o quid_fw-la non_fw-la credunt_fw-la utrum_fw-la quòd_fw-la à _fw-la martyribus_fw-la possunt_fw-la aliqui_fw-la visitari_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la christo_fw-la now_o credere_fw-la ipse_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la et_fw-la maiora_fw-la his_fw-la facietis_fw-la not_o to_o believe_v that_o martyr_n may_v visit_v and_o relieve_v man_n live_v in_o this_o world_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n see_v he_o say_v you_o shall_v do_v yet_o great_a thing_n nectarius_n speak_v unto_o saint_n theodore_n martyr_n tuis_fw-la martyr_n nectar_n orat_fw-la in_o primum_fw-la sabb._n sanctorum_fw-la jeiuniorum_fw-la in_o s._n theodorum_fw-la te_fw-la post_fw-la mortem_fw-la vivere_fw-la credimus_fw-la ut_fw-la ergo_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la vivis_fw-la &_o stas_fw-la prope_fw-la eum_fw-la precibus_fw-la tuis_fw-la propitium_fw-la eum_fw-la red_a famulis_fw-la tuis_fw-la we_o believe_v that_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o god_n a_o life_n without_o decay_n or_o end_n therefore_o as_o thou_o do_v live_v in_o christ_n &_o stand_v by_o he_o so_o make_v he_o by_o thy_o prayer_n propitious_a &_o merciful_a unto_o we_o thy_o servant_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o as_o certain_o as_o saint_n see_v god_n so_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o they_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o hear_v our_o prayer_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n doctrinâ_fw-la nazianzen_n gregory_n nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 26._o in_o patrem_fw-la suum_fw-la apostolium_n ferè_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la nec_fw-la dubito_fw-la quin_fw-la hoc_fw-la nunc_fw-la quoque_fw-la magis_fw-la faciat_fw-la postulatione_fw-la sva_fw-la quam_fw-la priùs_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o this_o bless_a saint_n in_o
prove_v that_o of_o necessity_n they_o be_v see_v and_o so_o the_o minister_n may_v have_v spare_v the_o paper_n in_o cite_v the_o opinion_n of_o schoolman_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o voluntary_a glass_n glass_n of_o diamant_n so_o clear_a and_o excellent_a that_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o london_n in_o secret_a corner_n shall_v therein_o particular_o and_o distinct_o appear_v sure_o he_o that_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v that_o glass_n may_v likewise_o discern_v what_o be_v do_v over_o the_o city_n now_o most_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o in_o god_n all_o creature_n all_o action_n do_v in_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o most_o secret_a thought_n of_o heart_n so_o perspicuous_o and_o distinct_o shine_v as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o so_o that_o the_o saint_n have_v light_n to_o see_v the_o divine_a essence_n may_v in_o he_o clear_o discern_v whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o the_o world_n belong_v to_o their_o state_n though_o never_o so_o secret_a according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o s._n virgin_n s._n basil._n lib._n de_fw-fr virgin_n basil_n there_o be_v not_o any_o saint_n which_o do_v not_o see_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v any_o where_o in_o the_o world_n and_o of_o s._n possint_fw-la s._n greg._n hom_n 40._o qui_fw-la creatoris_fw-la svi_fw-la claritatem_fw-la vident_fw-la nihil_fw-la in_o creatura_fw-la agitur_fw-la quod_fw-la videre_fw-la non_fw-la possint_fw-la gregory_n nothing_o be_v do_v about_o any_o creature_n which_o they_o can_v see_v who_o see_v the_o clarity_n of_o their_o creator_n and_o again_o 13._o again_o lib._n 12._o moral_a c._n 13._o we_o must_v believe_v that_o they_o who_o see_v the_o clarity_n of_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n within_o themselves_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v without_o which_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n that_o protestant_n may_v the_o less_o dislike_n i_o prove_v to_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n first_o if_o saint_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o blissful_a state_n do_v so_o participate_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o wisdom_n argument_n about_o the_o first_o argument_n as_o they_o communicate_v with_o he_o in_o the_o power_n of_o govern_v the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n church_n this_o argument_n be_v strong_a and_o you_o by_o struggle_a make_v the_o strength_n thereof_o more_o appear_v you_o have_v devise_v 3._o solution_n first_o you_o say_v pag._n 311._o lin_v 10._o that_o the_o jesuit_n exposition_n be_v novel_a and_o never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n answer_n it_o be_v ridiculous_a when_o you_o be_v press_v with_o the_o clear_a text_n of_o scripture_n to_o call_v upon_o the_o ancient_a church_n you_o i_o say_v who_o still_o special_o in_o this_o question_n appeal_v from_o the_o ancient_a father_n unto_o the_o scripture_n as_o pag._n 302._o and_o 298._o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o make_v ancient_a custom_n a_o law_n &_o rule_n of_o right_a doctrine_n and_o if_o you_o will_v stand_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o antiquity_n i_o can_v produce_v more_o than_o fifty_o ancient_a father_n that_o in_o express_a term_n teach_v the_o doctrine_n the_o jesuit_n do_v establish_v by_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n to_o wit_n that_o saint_n decease_v be_v ruler_n and_o governor_n of_o man_n action_n &_o life_n second_o you_o say_v pag._n 309._o that_o the_o text_n of_o the_o apocalyps_n to_o he_o that_o shall_v have_v conquer_v i_o will_v give_v he_o power_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o understand_v of_o saint_n decease_v but_o of_o live_a saint_n answer_n this_o to_o be_v false_a be_v apparent_a by_o the_o very_a word_n which_o be_v these_o apoc._n 226._o he_o that_o shall_v have_v conquer_v &_o keep_v my_o word_n until_o the_o end_n to_o he_o i_o will_v give_v power_n over_o nation_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v clear_v that_o live_a saint_n can_v be_v say_v to_o have_v conquer_v much_o less_o to_o have_v keep_v the_o word_n of_o god_n until_o âhe_v end_n therefore_o these_o word_n be_v violent_o wrest_v unto_o live_a saint_n three_o you_o say_v pag._n 320._o lin_v 3._o that_o the_o promise_n i_o will_v give_v they_o power_n over_o nation_n be_v understand_v only_o of_o judiciary_n power_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n answer_n this_o âo_o be_v false_a be_v prove_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n commend_v and_o praise_n above_o all_o other_o to_o wit_n when_o a_o text_n be_v doubtful_a the_o same_o must_v be_v expound_v by_o another_o which_o speak_v of_o the_o ââme_n matter_n special_o when_o the_o dark_a text_n do_v express_o allude_v unto_o âhe_n clear_a this_o place_n of_o the_o apocalips_n about_o saint_n i_o will_v give_v they_o power_n âuer_o nation_n and_o they_o shall_v rule_v they_o in_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n &_o they_o shall_v be_v break_v in_o piece_n ââke_v pot_n of_o clay_n seem_v dark_a unto_o protestant_n and_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o saint_n power_n in_o the_o militant_a church_n or_o only_o of_o âhe_n day_n of_o judgement_n to_o clear_v this_o doubt_n there_o be_v another_o text_n of_o scripture_n utter_v in_o the_o same_o word_n to_o wit_v the_o second_o psalm_n which_o say_v of_o christ_n that_o his_o father_n shall_v give_v he_o nation_n to_o be_v his_o inheritance_n and_o he_o shall_v ãâã_d they_o in_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o shall_v break_v they_o as_o pot_n of_o clay_n to_o this_o text_n of_o the_o psalm_n the_o place_n of_o the_o apocalips_n do_v allude_v for_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o apocalips_n promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v to_o saint_n power_n to_o govern_v in_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n nation_n &_o country_n as_o his_o father_n promise_v &_o give_v the_o same_o power_n unto_o he_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o aforesaid_a psalm_n but_o that_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n be_v without_o doubt_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n power_n of_o government_n in_o this_o world_n and_o of_o his_o rule_n in_o the_o militant_a church_n as_o protestant_n grant_v &_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n precedent_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o nation_n to_o be_v thy_o inheritance_n and_o thou_o shall_v rule_v they_o in_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n ergo_fw-la the_o power_n of_o govern_v iâ_n a_o rod_n of_o iron_n promise_v to_o saint_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o government_n in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o the_o militant_a church_n then_o saint_n have_v knowledge_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v in_o this_o world_n else_o how_o can_v they_o be_v able_a to_o govern_v and_o rule_v it_o but_o scripture_n in_o plain_n and_o express_v term_n make_v saint_n participate_v with_o christ_n in_o the_o rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n text_n promise_n because_o the_o minister_n do_v so_o much_o insult_v that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v not_o prove_v any_o thing_n by_o scripture_n i_o will_v that_o his_o folly_n may_v appear_v examine_v particular_o his_o answer_n unto_o these_o text_n apocalip_n 2.26_o to_o he_o that_o conquer_v i_o will_v give_v power_n over_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n that_o be_v with_o power_n of_o inflexible_a equity_n and_o apocal._n 3._o v._o 12._o i_o will_v make_v he_o a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o my_o god_n and_o the_o bless_a say_v of_o themselves_o apoc._n 5.10_o that_o they_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o country_n and_o nation_n to_o be_v priest_n of_o god_n &_o that_o they_o shall_v rule_v with_o he_o upon_o the_o earth_n therefore_o they_o know_v what_o be_v do_v upon_o earth_n so_o far_o forth_o at_o least_o as_o the_o affair_n of_o earth_n do_v special_o appertain_v unto_o they_o and_o such_o without_o doubt_n be_v our_o devotion_n towards_o they_o second_o s._n paul_n cor._n 14.26_o say_v now_o we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n we_o prophesy_v but_o in_o part_n but_o when_o that_o of_o perfection_n shall_v come_v that_o of_o part_n shall_v be_v evacuate_v i_o know_v now_o but_o in_o part_n them_z i_o shall_v know_v as_o i_o be_o know_v by_o which_o word_n the_o apostle_n signifyes_n that_o all_o knowledge_n both_o humane_a &_o divine_a particular_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n be_v contain_v eminent_o in_o the_o beatifical_a âight_n so_o that_o the_o bless_a saint_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n in_o a_o more_o excellent_a degree_n they_o have_v the_o prophet_n in_o this_o world_n but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o prophecy_n holy_a man_n unite_v with_o god_n can_v see_v the_o secret_n of_o heart_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v 1._o cor._n 14.15_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n the_o secret_n of_o heart_n be_v manife_v and_o also_o see_v thing_n absent_a be_v present_a by_o light_n of_o understanding_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v absent_a according_a to_o their_o substance_n they_o substance_n the_o minister_n seek_v two_o way_n
conceit_n that_o species_n in_o the_o singular_a do_v signify_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o not_o the_o shape_n of_o outward_a accident_n yet_o i_o think_v you_o be_v not_o so_o devoid_a of_o all_o ãâã_d as_o you_o will_v affirm_v that_o effigy_n in_o the_o singular_a may_v signify_v nature_n and_o kind_n nor_o will_v you_o be_v so_o senseleâââ_n as_o to_o translate_v panis_fw-la non_fw-la effigy_n sed_fw-la natura_fw-la mutatus_fw-la bread_n change_v not_o according_a to_o the_o kind_n but_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o if_o effigy_n signify_v shape_n &_o not_o kind_a than_o we_o see_v this_o most_o ancient_a father_n suppose_v as_o a_o thing_n most_o certain_a that_o the_o sacred_a eucharist_n be_v bread_n in_o shape_n and_o show_v not_o in_o the_o nature_n oâ_n invisible_a essence_n a_o mystery_n seem_o absurd_a to_o flesh_n &_o blood_n yet_o you_o may_v more_o wise_o upon_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n believe_v it_o with_o simplicity_n of_o faith_n against_o your_o carnal_a sense_n then_o seek_v to_o maintain_v this_o be_v not_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n with_o so_o much_o childish_a simplicity_n against_o grammar_n a_o five_o example_n of_o ignorance_n join_v with_o extreme_a insolency_n §._o 5._o have_v make_v manifest_a your_o simplicity_n in_o latin_a i_o add_v another_o conviction_n of_o your_o grammatical_a ignorance_n even_o about_o the_o construction_n of_o a_o english_a sentence_n whereby_o most_o calumnious_o you_o ãâã_d upon_o your_o adversary_n false_a and_o impious_a doctrine_n i_o will_v not_o have_v note_v your_o grossness_n in_o this_o point_n be_v not_o the_o same_o join_v with_o serious_a disputation_n against_o the_o suppose_a error_n &_o most_o bitter_a insultation_n against_o the_o jesuit_n not_o only_o revile_v he_o but_o also_o his_o whole_a order_n yea_o through_o their_o side_n the_o most_o holy_a ancient_a father_n thus_o you_o write_v pag._n 236._o the_o latter_a branch_n of_o the_o jesuit_n assumption_n to_o wit_n the_o cross_n nail_n &_o lance_n be_v offer_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n at_o his_o passion_n be_v impious_o false_a for_o nothing_o be_v offer_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n ãâã_d his_o passion_n but_o himself_o &_o part_n of_o himself_o hebr._n 7.27_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d he_o offer_v up_o himself_o hebr._n 9.14_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n he_o offer_v up_o himself_o without_o spot_n to_o god_n etc._n etc._n hebr._n 10.10_o we_o be_v sanctify_v through_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o for_o all_o hebr._n 9.12_o by_o his_o own_o blood_n he_o enter_v once_o into_o the_o holy_a place_n and_o if_o the_o cross_n nail_n and_o lance_n be_v offer_v by_o chrict_a to_o his_o father_n than_o we_o be_v redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n which_o be_v a_o jesuitical_a or_o rather_o anti-iesuiâ_a doctrine_n that_o be_v a_o doctrine_n ascribe_v to_o dead_a creature_n iron_n wood_n steel_n nail_n etc._n etc._n that_o which_o be_v most_o proper_a to_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o jesus_n this_o doctrine_n maintain_v by_o loyalist_n be_v most_o sacrilegious_a and_o more_o to_o be_v abhorreâ_n then_o judas_n his_o lip_n but_o it_o be_v fulfil_v in_o these_o man_n which_o clement_n alexandrinus_n say_v of_o heathen_a idolater_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v they_o not_o prodigious_a monster_n that_o adore_v stock_n and_o stone_n thus_o serious_o do_v you_o dispute_v against_o jesuite_n who_o you_o name_v loyalist_n for_o hold_v doctrine_n they_o never_o dream_v of_o they_o 17._o they_o crux_fw-la ara_fw-la fuit_fw-la summi_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr imag_n c._n 17._o teach_v with_o the_o pass_n the_o crux_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la templi_fw-la fuit_fw-la ara_fw-la sed_fw-la mundi_fw-la leo_fw-la serm_n 10._o the_o pass_n father_n that_o the_o cross_n be_v the_o altar_n whereon_o christ_n offer_v up_o himself_o but_o that_o he_o offer_v up_o to_o his_o father_n the_o wood_n of_o the_o cross_n or_o the_o steel_n &_o iron_n of_o the_o lance_n &_o nail_n for_o our_o redemption_n certain_a i_o be_o this_o never_o pass_v through_o their_o thought_n and_o yeâ_n ãâã_d his_o suppose_a error_n you_o be_v so_o waspish_a as_o ãâã_d have_v fisher_n have_v not_o without_o cause_n she_o have_v give_v out_o disgraceful_a word_n against_o m._n fisher_n suspect_v that_o as_o omphale_n ãâ¦ã_o the_o âlub_n of_o hercules_n so_o your_o xantippe_n in_o your_o ãâ¦ã_o take_v your_o pen_n into_o her_o hand_n and_o thence_o pour_v down_o upon_o our_o head_n this_o shameful_a shower_n ãâã_d ââproach_n i_o may_v i_o say_v have_v entertain_v this_o suâââtion_n be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o so_o frequent_a aspersion_n of_o so_o many_o greek_a word_n according_a to_o the_o videtur_fw-la the_o si_fw-mi duo_fw-la aut_fw-la tria_fw-la verba_fw-la graeca_v sonuerit_fw-la sapere_fw-la sibi_fw-la videtur_fw-la fashion_n of_o heretic_n against_o which_o i_o may_v fit_o in_o this_o place_n apply_v the_o word_n of_o the_o satire_n omnia_fw-la graecè_fw-la cùm_fw-la sit_fw-la turpe_fw-la magis_fw-la nostris_fw-la nescire_fw-la latinè_n greeke_n word_n flow_v from_o their_o mouth_n whereas_o in_o man_n of_o ãâã_d it_o be_v more_o shameful_a to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o their_o own_o language_n &_o to_o want_v wit_n &_o judgement_n to_o construe_v the_o same_o upon_o which_o ignorance_n this_o your_o imputation_n of_o ãâã_d unto_o jesuit_n be_v ground_v except_o you_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o herein_o you_o slander_v they_o malicious_o as_o i_o will_v now_o clear_o demonstrate_v first_o those_o word_n the_o cross_n nail_n and_o lance_n be_v offer_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o heavenly_a father_n at_o his_o passion_n how_o be_v they_o set_v down_o by_o you_o as_o the_o very_a text_n of_o the_o jesuite_n in_o so_o many_o word_n show_v these_o formal_a word_n in_o his_o book_n &_o he_o i_o know_v will_v give_v you_o leave_v to_o rail_v at_o he_o wherein_o you_o take_v so_o great_a pleasure_n till_o you_o have_v ease_v your_o stomach_n of_o all_o your_o ãâã_d as_o your_o own_o word_n wherein_o you_o think_v to_o ãâã_d down_o not_o the_o text_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o jesuite_n ãâã_d why_o then_o be_v they_o put_v in_o a_o distinct_a letter_n as_o ãâã_d from_o you_o and_o as_o the_o jesuite_n formal_a ãâã_d if_o the_o jesuite_n word_n be_v ambiguous_a &_o ãâã_d to_o that_o impious_a sense_n you_o set_v upon_o they_o ãâã_d âhey_n be_v not_o yet_o as_o it_o have_v be_v charity_n to_o have_v coâârued_v they_o to_o the_o better_a sense_n so_o be_v your_o falsehood_n intolerable_a to_o substitute_v in_o lieu_n of_o his_o ambiguous_a speech_n another_o that_o contain_v impiety_n without_o ãâã_d ambiguity_n and_o doubt_n another_o i_o say_v of_o your_o owâ_n make_v set_v in_o a_o distinct_a letter_n as_o if_o it_o be_v formal_o and_o verbal_o he_o second_o if_o the_o true_a word_n of_o the_o jesuit_n ãâã_d down_o it_o will_v present_o appear_v that_o his_o proposition_n be_v not_o that_o the_o cross_n and_o nail_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o ãâã_d at_o christ_n passion_n but_o that_o they_o be_v instrument_n of_o his_o passion_n not_o as_o the_o same_o proceed_v from_o ãâã_d heart_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o as_o by_o he_o entertain_v in_o ãâã_d own_o hart_n and_o offer_v to_o his_o father_n &_o this_o so_o clever_o as_o it_o may_v seem_v prodigious_a that_o you_o can_v ignoârantly_o or_o that_o you_o will_v witting_o mistake_v his_o seââtence_n for_o the_o jesuit_n answer_v a_o protestant_a vulgââ_n objection_n the_o king_n majesty_n urge_v in_o the_o conference_n if_o the_o cross_n &_o nail_n be_v worship_v because_o they_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n why_o not_o also_o the_o lypp_n of_o judas_n ãâã_d touch_v our_o saviour_n lypp_n when_o he_o give_v he_o that_o trayââârous_a kiss_n the_o jesuit_n i_o say_v deliver_v a_o threefold_a mâânifest_a disparity_n between_o the_o lip_n of_o judas_n and_o the_o hââly_a cross_n and_o about_o the_o three_o disparity_n he_o thus_o ãâã_d the_o passion_n may_v be_v consider_v two_o way_n first_o as_o pâââceeding_v from_o the_o will_n of_o wicked_a man_n that_o torment_a hiâ_n in_o which_o consideration_n it_o be_v not_o grateful_a unto_o god_n ãâã_d detestableâaction_n in_o the_o doer_n thereof_o second_o as_o it_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n admit_v into_o his_o heart_n ãâã_d offer_v to_o his_o father_n and_o by_o this_o consideration_n be_v sacred_a and_o venerable_a the_o lip_n of_o judas_n betray_v ãâã_d be_v instrument_n of_o his_o passion_n as_o it_o proceed_v from_o ãâã_d hart_n and_o consequent_o as_o it_o be_v a_o detestable_a action_n but_o ãâã_d cross_n the_o nail_n the_o lance_n that_o stay_v in_o and_o be_v ãâ¦ã_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v instrument_n of_o his_o passion_n ãâã_d in_o his_o sacred_a person_n and_o
inference_n in_o a_o matter_n where_o you_o pretend_v to_o be_v very_o confident_a that_o you_o can_v bring_v most_o invincible_a proof_n a_o controversy_n there_o be_v between_o you_o and_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a inviolable_a ordinance_n that_o all_o lay_v man_n read_v scripture_n so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o translate_v scripture_n into_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n &_o not_o to_o take_v translation_n from_o such_o person_n as_o abuse_v they_o or_o use_v they_o to_o their_o perdition_n in_o which_o question_n we_o say_v you_o 278._o you_o reply_v pag._n 278._o affirm_v with_o great_a confidence_n that_o the_o read_n of_o holy_a scripture_n by_o lay_v people_n which_o must_v needs_o imply_v translation_n of_o they_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n and_o because_o the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o he_o can_v never_o hear_v nor_o read_v in_o protestant_n substantial_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o this_o pretend_a divine_a ordinance_n the_o common_o urge_a text_n search_v the_o scripture_n be_v insufficient_a you_o say_v that_o you_o not_o only_o urge_v the_o text_n john_n 3.39_o which_o the_o jesuit_n think_v he_o can_v elude_v by_o subtle_a distinction_n as_o the_o arrian_n elude_v the_o text_n of_o s._n john_n 10.30_o that_o be_v solide_o answer_v as_o father_n as_o caluin_n in_o caput_fw-la 10._o joan_n circa_fw-la vers_fw-la â0_n say_v the_o ancient_a father_n abuse_v this_o text_n i_o &_o my_o father_n be_v one_o to_o prove_v christ_n not_o consubstantial_a with_o his_o father_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o unity_n of_o substance_n but_o of_o unity_n of_o consent_n betwixt_o he_o and_o his_o father_n caluin_n aver_v but_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o you_o lay_v together_o on_o a_o heap_n in_o this_o 378._o this_o reply_v pag._n 378._o sort_n the_o eunuch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n act._n 8.28_o the_o beroean_n be_v call_v noble_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o search_v the_o holy_a scripture_n act._n 17.11_o he_o be_v call_v bless_v that_o read_v and_o hear_v apocalip_n 1.3_o the_o galatian_n read_v the_o scripture_n gal._n 4.22_o the_o ephesian_n c._n 3.4_o the_o colossian_n c._n 4.16_o the_o thessalonian_o 1._o thes._n 5.27_o the_o father_n be_v so_o plentiful_a in_o this_o argument_n as_o i_o have_v 42._o have_v defence_n of_o my_o brother_n pag._n 42._o elsewhere_o show_v that_o it_o will_v astonish_v any_o man_n who_o have_v read_v they_o to_o behold_v such_o impudence_n in_o papist_n as_o to_o deny_v the_o practice_n to_o have_v be_v primitive_a and_o catholic_a but_o necessity_n have_v no_o law_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v suffer_v to_o speak_v papistry_n must_v fall_v like_o dagon_n before_o the_o arkâ_n thus_o you_o give_v we_o great_a cause_n to_o commiserate_v your_o blindness_n that_o dispute_v so_o ignorant_o you_o shall_v conclude_v so_o arrogant_o you_o have_v in_o the_o place_n by_o you_o quote_v 42._o quote_v orthodox_n pag._n 42._o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o heresy_n bring_v many_o testimony_n of_o father_n to_o prove_v what_o no_o man_n deny_v to_o wit_n these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o it_o be_v pious_a and_o godly_a to_o read_v scripture_n with_o devotion_n with_o humility_n with_o submission_n of_o judgement_n unto_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n and_o common_a exposition_n of_o catholic_a doctor_n second_o that_o the_o practice_n of_o read_v by_o lay_v people_n be_v common_a &_o frequent_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o time_n that_o the_o learned_a language_n be_v vulgar_o know_v in_o which_o tongue_n the_o church_n neither_o now_o do_v nor_o ever_o do_v prohibit_v the_o read_n of_o scripture_n unto_o any_o person_n these_o two_o thing_n we_o approve_v so_o that_o you_o be_v unaduised_a might_n i_o not_o say_v impudent_a in_o your_o affirm_v that_o the_o papist_n impudent_o deny_v this_o to_o have_v be_v a_o primitive_a practice_n no_o we_o deny_v not_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n with_o due_a humility_n to_o be_v pious_a or_o to_o have_v be_v a_o primitive_a practice_n but_o only_o two_o proud_a noveltye_n bring_v in_o by_o your_o religion_n first_o that_o it_o 126._o it_o the_o very_a word_n of_o your_o brother_n john_n in_o his_o way_n pag._n 126._o be_v lawful_a yea_o necessary_a for_o every_o particular_a man_n by_o the_o scripture_n to_o examine_v and_o judge_n of_o the_o thing_n the_o church_n teach_v he_o and_o when_o a_o private_a man_n by_o scripture_n reject_v and_o condemn_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o great_a and_o best_a church_n that_o be_v his_o judgement_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v as_o private_a but_o as_o spiritvall_n and_o the_o public_a censure_n of_o the_o spirit_n second_o that_o all_o even_o layman_n by_o divine_a pretext_n and_o ordinance_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n &_o to_o have_v they_o in_o their_o vulgar_a language_n this_o your_o doctrine_n this_o your_o practice_n we_o dislike_v as_o dangerous_a as_o impious_a as_o the_o fountain_n of_o discord_n of_o heresy_n and_o of_o manifold_a most_o damnable_a error_n a_o doctrine_n which_o be_v it_o every_o where_o establish_v not_o dagon_n before_o the_o ark_n but_o christianity_n will_v fall_v before_o and_o yield_v unto_o the_o devil_n as_o some_o of_o your_o side_n teach_v by_o lamentable_a experience_n acknowledge_v and_o complain_v this_o opinion_n say_v they_o 119._o they_o hooker_n ecclesiast_fw-la policy_n pag._n 119._o be_v once_o insert_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o vulgar_a what_o it_o may_v grow_v unto_o god_n only_o know_v thus_o much_o we_o see_v it_o have_v already_o make_v thousand_n so_o headstronge_a even_o in_o grosse_n and_o palpable_a error_n as_o that_o a_o man_n who_o capacity_n will_v scarce_o serve_v he_o to_o utter_v five_o word_n in_o sensible_a manner_n blush_v not_o for_o matter_n of_o scripture_n to_o think_v his_o own_o bare_a yea_o as_o good_a as_o the_o nay_o of_o all_o the_o wise_a grave_a and_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n which_o insolency_n must_v be_v repress_v or_o it_o will_v the_o very_a bane_n of_o christian_a religion_n behold_v open_a confession_n extort_a upon_o the_o rack_n of_o truth_n by_o which_o we_o may_v perceive_v how_o full_o and_o handsome_o your_o doctrine_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a and_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o every_o particular_a man_n read_v scripture_n and_o by_o it_o examine_v and_o judge_v the_o church_n teach_v have_v make_v dagon_n to_o fall_v before_o the_o ark_n but_o leave_v the_o vanity_n of_o your_o bitter_a vaunt_a let_v we_o examine_v what_o demonstration_n out_o of_o scripture_n you_o bring_v for_o your_o pretend_a divine_a ordinance_n which_o with_o so_o much_o confidence_n you_o aver_v if_o your_o argue_v be_v idle_a and_o ridiculous_a in_o this_o point_n wherein_o you_o profess_v to_o be_v so_o confident_a what_o may_v be_v expect_v of_o you_o in_o other_o article_n especial_o be_v challenge_v to_o show_v your_o uttermost_a force_n by_o your_o adversary_n affirm_v 278._o affirm_v see_v the_o reply_n pag._n 278._o that_o he_o can_v never_o find_v any_o solid_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o this_o protestant_n pretend_v divine_a ordinance_n your_o argument_n be_v seven_o draw_v from_o 7._o text_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o your_o antecedent_n common_o be_v either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a and_o your_o inference_n ridiculous_a the_o first_o the_o 8.28_o the_o act._n 8.28_o eunuch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o ignorant_a layman_n read_v scripture_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n your_o antecedent_n be_v more_o they_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_v i_o read_v not_o any_o direct_a praise_n of_o he_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o text_n only_o 8.28_o only_o act._n 8.28_o say_v he_o be_v sit_v in_o his_o chariot_n &_o read_v the_o prophet_n esay_n but_o suppose_v he_o be_v commend_v for_o his_o read_n as_o it_o be_v indeed_o commendable_a be_v it_o consequent_a that_o therefore_o every_o christian_a by_o divine_a order_n and_o precept_n do_v the_o like_a be_v every_o man_n bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o do_v every_o thing_n for_o which_o any_o person_n be_v praise_v in_o scripture_n david_n be_v commend_v in_o scripture_n for_o rise_v at_o midnight_n to_o praise_n god_n be_v this_o argument_n good_a ergo_fw-la every_o christian_a be_v bind_v by_o divine_a precept_n to_o rise_v at_o midnight_n very_o this_o consequence_n be_v as_o good_a yea_o better_a both_o in_o respect_n of_o form_n and_o matter_n then_o be_v this_o of_o you_o the_o enunch_n be_v commend_v for_o read_v holy_a scripture_n ergo_fw-la every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o read_v scripture_n by_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o second_o be_v the_o 17.11_o the_o act._n 17.11_o beroean_n be_v call_v noble_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o search_v the_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la we_o may_v with_o
that_o unto_o minister_n religious_a adoration_n be_v due_a §._o 1._o this_o you_o affirm_v pag._n 224._o where_o you_o undertake_v to_o range_v in_o order_n the_o kind_n of_o union_n with_o god_n unto_o which_o religious_a adoration_n be_v due_a religious_a adoration_n say_v you_o primary_n or_o secondary_a be_v not_o found_v upon_o every_o kind_n of_o union_n as_o appear_v in_o mental_a image_n but_o upon_o certain_a kind_n of_o union_n to_o wit_n first_o personal_a as_o when_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n be_v couple_v with_o the_o deity_n second_o substantial_a as_o when_o the_o part_n be_v couple_v with_o the_o whole_a three_o causal_n relative_n or_o accidental_a to_o wit_n when_o by_o divine_a ordination_n thing_n create_v be_v make_v instrument_n messenger_n figure_n &_o receptacle_n of_o divine_a grace_n as_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o the_o word_n and_o gospel_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n behold_v among_o the_o object_n that_o have_v such_o union_n with_o god_n as_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o yield_v they_o religious_a adoration_n you_o number_v minister_n with_o a_o et_fw-la cetera_fw-la in_o the_o end_n perchance_o leave_v room_n for_o your_o wife_n to_o enter_v to_o be_v likewise_o your_o consort_n in_o religious_a adoration_n as_o good_a reason_n they_o shall_v how_o gross_a this_o error_n be_v special_o in_o you_o hence_o may_v appear_v in_o that_o hereby_o you_o overthrow_v a_o great_a part_n of_o your_o reply_n first_o you_o clear_o contradict_v that_o principle_n which_o so_o many_o time_n you_o set_v down_o and_o very_o earnest_o urge_v to_o wit_n that_o religious_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o god_n only_o how_o can_v this_o be_v true_a if_o religious_a worship_n be_v due_a unto_o minister_n be_v not_o minister_n creature_n be_v they_o not_o other_o thing_n and_o person_n beside_o god_n nor_o can_v you_o say_v that_o when_o you_o affirm_v religious_a worship_n to_o be_v due_a to_o god_n only_o you_o mean_v primary_n religious_a adoration_n and_o that_o consequent_o you_o do_v not_o contradict_v yourself_o in_o say_v that_o secondary_a religious_a adoration_n be_v due_a unto_o minister_n this_o evasion_n i_o say_v will_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n because_o you_o declare_v in_o express_a term_n that_o all_o religious_a adoration_n primary_n or_o secondary_a be_v due_a to_o god_n only_o thus_o you_o write_v pag._n 322._o whereas_o the_o jesuite_n do_v distinguish_v two_o kind_n of_o religious_a worship_n the_o one_o primary_n and_o simple_o divine_a found_v upon_o the_o increate_v and_o infinite_a excellency_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n only_o the_o other_o secondary_a found_v upon_o the_o create_a excellency_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n which_o be_v yield_v unto_o saint_n and_o angel_n to_o this_o we_o reply_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o kind_n of_o worship_n than_o there_o be_v table_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n but_o there_o be_v only_o two_o table_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n the_o former_a whereof_o teach_v divine_a worship_n and_o the_o second_o humane_a civil_a and_o of_o special_a observance_n and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o mix_a worship_n partly_o human_a partly_o divine_a so_o much_o thereof_o as_o be_v divine_a be_v proper_a to_o god_n and_o may_v not_o be_v impart_v unto_o any_o creature_n isa._n 42.8_o where_o god_n say_v my_o glory_n i_o will_v not_o give_v to_o another_o thus_o you_o how_o gross_o do_v you_o contradict_v yourself_o and_o implicate_v in_o your_o say_n be_v not_o minister_n other_o from_o god_n asmuch_o as_n angel_n if_o then_o adoration_n and_o religious_a adoration_n be_v give_v unto_o minister_n how_o be_v it_o not_o adoration_n give_v to_o other_o beside_o god_n asmuch_o as_n when_o angel_n be_v religious_o adore_v second_o you_o have_v destroy_v all_o you_o say_v in_o the_o first_o point_n against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n special_o pag._n 246_o where_o you_o thus_o speak_v unto_o we_o if_o you_o adore_v image_n outward_o and_o relative_o than_o you_o make_v image_n a_o partial_a object_n of_o adoration_n but_o god_n himself_o who_o say_v i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o glory_n to_o another_o isa_n 24.8_o have_v exclude_v image_n from_o copartnership_n with_o himself_o in_o adoration_n thus_o you_o all_o which_o be_v prove_v idle_a by_o your_o doctrine_n that_o minister_n be_v religious_o to_o be_v adore_v for_o if_o no_o creature_n can_v be_v compartner_z with_o god_n himself_o in_o adoration_n how_o may_v minister_n be_v his_o partner_n therein_o and_o challenge_v religious_a adoration_n as_o due_a to_o themselves_o if_o they_o may_v be_v religious_o adore_v &_o yet_o not_o be_v his_o partner_n in_o adoration_n against_o his_o divine_a edict_n my_o glory_n i_o will_v not_o give_v to_o another_o why_o not_o angel_n why_o not_o holy_a image_n what_o say_v you_o of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v they_o not_o creature_n aswell_o as_o image_n special_o in_o your_o opinion_n who_o hold_v that_o they_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o element_n unchanged_a in_o substance_n and_o yet_o you_o say_v that_o unto_o the_o sacrament_n and_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n religious_a adoration_n be_v due_a because_o they_o have_v a_o relative_a union_n with_o god_n how_o they_o be_v religious_a adoration_n due_a to_o god_n only_o if_o religious_a adoration_n may_v redound_v from_o christ_n unto_o his_o sacrament_n why_o not_o from_o christ_n unto_o his_o image_n which_o have_v a_o relative_a union_n with_o he_o as_o be_v resemblance_n &_o representation_n of_o he_o three_o you_o have_v overthrow_v and_o contradict_v all_o you_o say_v about_o the_o second_o of_o the_o nine_o point_n to_o wit_n against_o oblation_n unto_o the_o virgin_n mary_n in_o the_o old_a law_n say_v you_o not_o only_o sacrifice_n but_o also_o vow_n and_o oblation_n be_v make_v to_o god_n only_o 348._o reply_v pag._n 348._o deut._n 23.21_o levit_fw-la c._n 24.5.6_o this_o law_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o substance_n be_v moral_a and_o oblige_v christian_a people_n aswell_o in_o case_n of_o oblation_n as_o of_o sacrifice_n now_o by_o what_o authority_n and_o right_o can_v the_o roman_a church_n abrogate_v this_o law_n in_o whole_a or_o part_n and_o appropriate_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n make_v oblation_n common_a to_o god_n and_o saint_n thus_o you_o very_o vain_o not_o only_o in_o regard_n that_o the_o text_n of_o deuteronomy_n do_v not_o say_v that_o vow_n and_o promise_n be_v to_o be_v make_v unto_o god_n only_o but_o no_o more_o then_o that_o if_o one_o make_v a_o vow_n unto_o god_n he_o must_v be_v careful_a to_o keep_v it_o whence_o to_o infer_v that_o vow_n and_o promise_n may_v not_o be_v make_v unto_o man_n or_o saint_n but_o to_o god_n only_o be_v ridiculous_a the_o text_n also_o of_o leviticuâ_n say_v that_o oblation_n and_o gift_n be_v to_o be_v make_v unto_o god_n but_o that_o to_o god_n only_o not_o a_o word_n and_o to_o say_v give_v of_o gift_n to_o be_v proper_a unto_o god_n only_o be_v foolish_a except_o you_o mean_v gift_n and_o oblation_n by_o way_n of_o sacrifice_n as_o unto_o the_o author_n of_o all_o gift_n &_o fountain_n of_o be_v for_o what_o more_o daily_o and_o quotidian_a then_o for_o man_n to_o make_v present_n and_o oblation_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o special_o unto_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o testimony_n of_o their_o duty_n but_o as_o i_o say_v your_o discourse_n be_v vain_a not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o your_o idle_a cypher_v of_o scripture_n but_o also_o because_o yourself_o demolish_v this_o your_o doctrine_n by_o say_v or_o suppose_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o oblation_n by_o way_n of_o religion_n may_v be_v make_v unto_o minister_n that_o this_o be_v by_o you_o suppose_v i_o prove_v to_o show_v that_o minister_n be_v religious_o to_o be_v adore_v you_o cypher_n 2._o cor._n 8.5_o where_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o macedonia_n 26._o reply_v pa._n 224._o lin_v 26._o they_o give_v themselves_o first_o unto_o god_n &_o then_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n unto_o us._n by_o which_o text_n you_o can_v conclude_v religious_a adoration_n to_o be_v due_a unto_o minister_n but_o by_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n they_o unto_o who_o man_n by_o way_n of_o religion_n and_o devotion_n give_v &_o offer_v themselves_o be_v religious_o adore_v because_o oblation_n be_v divine_a &_o religious_a worship_n the_o church_n of_o macedonia_n do_v by_o way_n of_o religion_n and_o devotion_n offer_v themselves_o unto_o s._n paul_n because_o he_o be_v a_o minister_n ergo_fw-la unto_o minister_n religious_a adoration_n be_v to_o be_v give_v this_o i_o say_v must_v be_v the_o force_n of_o your_o argument_n for_o if_o the_o macedonian_n do_v not_o by_o way_n of_o religion_n &_o devotion_n offer_v themselves_o unto_o s._n paul_n how_o can_v you_o show_v that_o by_o give_v themselves_o unto_o he_o they_o do_v religious_o adore_v he_o
&_o always_o direct_v in_o their_o public_a doctrine_n but_o wicked_a person_n say_v s._n augustine_n retain_v the_o figure_n or_o outward_a shape_n of_o a_o member_n but_o they_o be_v not_o in_o truth_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-fr compage_fw-la domus_fw-la dei_fw-la they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o house_n of_o christ._n ergo._n thus_o you_o how_o false_a and_o absurd_a this_o your_o doctrine_n be_v i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o show_v by_o scripture_n and_o father_n which_o be_v clear_a and_o plentiful_a in_o this_o point_n for_o though_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o fountain_n of_o sanctify_a grace_n can_v have_v wicked_a and_o damnable_a member_n that_o receive_v influence_n from_o he_o yet_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o spiritual_a government_n and_o authority_n he_o may_v have_v damnable_a subject_n and_o member_n and_o from_o he_o power_n and_o authority_n may_v flow_v unto_o they_o but_o omit_v this_o i_o will_v make_v your_o folly_n and_o ignorance_n apparent_a by_o prove_v that_o this_o your_o argument_n be_v inept_v in_o respect_n of_o form_n &_o in_o the_o matter_n so_o absurd_a as_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o you_o overthrow_n your_o own_o church_n you_o cross_v the_o main_a stream_n of_o protestant_a doctrine_n first_o your_o argument_n even_o in_o respect_n of_o form_n be_v fond_a for_o you_o change_v the_o medium_n or_o mean_n of_o proof_n argue_v from_o the_o time_n preterite_n to_o the_o present_a fine_a present_a reply_v pag._n 100l_n in_o fine_a wolf_n hypocrite_n &_o impious_a person_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n romish_a prelate_n have_v be_v hypocrite_n wolf_n and_o impious_a person_n ergo._n the_o romish_a prelate_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n who_o do_v not_o feel_v this_o manner_n of_o argue_v to_o be_v inept_v as_o good_a &_o no_o better_a than_o this_o a_o suck_a child_n be_v not_o a_o preacher_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n francis_n white_n have_v be_v a_o suck_a child_n ergo._n he_o be_v not_o a_o preacher_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n hence_o though_o your_o paradox_n that_o the_o church_n which_o have_v a_o wicked_a man_n for_o pastor_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n be_v true_a &_o your_o tale_n that_o some_o pope_n have_v be_v wicked_a be_v also_o grant_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o hence_o consequent_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o now_o the_o true_a church_n but_o at_o the_o most_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o time_n that_o it_o have_v some_o wicked_a pope_n for_o supreme_a pastor_n second_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o about_o the_o doctrine_n that_o wicked_a pastor_n can_v faithful_o preserve_v and_o deliver_v the_o true_a word_n of_o salvation_n for_o pag._n 52._o you_o thus_o write_v to_o the_o contrary_n the_o promise_n of_o christ_n make_v to_o the_o church_n concern_v his_o presence_n &_o assistance_n to_o his_o sacrament_n preach_v and_o administer_v according_a to_o his_o commandment_n be_v fulfil_v when_o wicked_a person_n execute_v the_o office_n and_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o outward_a ministry_n for_o although_o the_o wicked_a like_o the_o carpenter_n of_o noah_n ark_n reap_v no_o benefit_n to_o themselves_o yet_o god_n almighty_a concur_v with_o their_o ministry_n be_v his_o own_o ordinance_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o devout_a communicant_n thus_o you_o if_o this_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a then_o may_v wicked_a person_n faithful_o and_o constant_o deliver_v apostolical_a tradition_n about_o matter_n of_o salvation_n this_o sequel_n i_o prove_v they_o with_o who_o ministry_n god_n do_v concur_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o devout_a &_o worthy_a communicant_n be_v bind_v so_o to_o do_v by_o his_o promise_n do_v constant_o and_o faithful_o deliver_v apostolical_a tradition_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n and_o be_v infallible_o direct_v so_o to_o do_v this_o be_v evident_a because_o when_o god_n concur_v with_o his_o minister_n to_o teach_v the_o truth_n they_o never_o err_v nor_o deliver_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n false_a doctrine_n but_o god_n do_v still_o and_o infallible_o concur_v with_o they_o with_o who_o to_o concur_v he_o have_v bind_v himself_o by_o promise_n ever_o and_o always_o even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o if_o god_n have_v bind_v himself_o to_o his_o church_n that_o he_o will_v concur_v even_o with_o the_o wicked_a minister_n of_o his_o word_n in_o their_o teach_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o devout_a &_o worthy_a communicant_n as_o you_o affirm_v pag_n 52_o lin_v 18._o then_o wicked_a person_n may_v deliver_v faithful_o &_o constant_o apostolical_a tradition_n concern_v faith_n and_o salvation_n and_o be_v infallible_o direct_v so_o to_o do_v which_o you_o deny_v pag._n 54_o lin_v 6._o manifest_o contradict_v yourself_o within_o less_o than_o a_o leaf_n three_o you_o overthrow_n your_o own_o protestant_n church_n for_o if_o that_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n direct_v by_o god_n according_a to_o his_o infallible_a promise_n wherein_o wicked_a man_n have_v sit_v as_o visible_a ruler_n &_o governor_n than_o protestant_n and_o all_o of_o their_o communion_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n out_o of_o which_o salvation_n be_v not_o have_v for_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o be_v so_o impudent_a as_o to_o deny_v but_o they_o have_v have_v some_o wicked_a man_n for_o their_o ruler_n and_o pastor_n be_v not_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o ruler_n &_o governor_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o yet_o their_o own_o history_n paint_v he_o forth_o as_o a_o monster_n for_o beastliness_n cruelty_n and_o impiety_n be_v not_o cranmer_n a_o most_o wicked_a persecutor_n and_o murderer_n of_o diverse_a saint_n not_o only_o of_o catholic_n but_o of_o sundry_a foxian_a martyr_n who_o be_v by_o he_o send_v to_o the_o fire_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v a_o ruler_n &_o governor_n in_o the_o protestant_a church_n wherefore_o the_o argument_n which_o you_o set_v in_o distinct_a letter_n &_o line_n as_o of_o special_a weight_n may_v be_v with_o the_o same_o force_n &_o form_n apply_v against_o your_o protestant_a church_n in_o so_o many_o word_n only_o by_o place_v the_o word_n protestant_a in_o lieu_n of_o romish_n wolf_n hypocrite_n &_o impious_a person_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n protestant_n prelate_n and_o visible_a ruler_n have_v be_v wolf_n hypocrite_n &_o impious_a person_n ergo._n protestant_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n out_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n four_o what_o more_o opposite_a to_o the_o common_a stream_n even_o of_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n then_o that_o that_o church_n can_v be_v the_o temple_n &_o house_n of_o god_n in_o which_o wicked_a and_o impious_a man_n sit_v or_o have_v sit_v as_o visible_a ruler_n common_o all_o minister_n foolish_o i_o confess_v yet_o earnest_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n because_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n and_o church_n of_o god_n as_o christ_n vicar_n and_o as_o her_o supreme_a visible_a head_n &_o ruler_n under_o christ_n which_o doctrine_n you_o yourself_o suppose_v as_o certain_a pag._n 588._o be_v you_o make_v this_o exclamation_n what_o a_o misery_n will_v it_o be_v if_o it_o fall_v out_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o will_v that_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o great_a part_n of_o english_a romiste_n be_v find_v to_o have_v follow_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n who_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n so_o that_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n thus_o you_o i_o urge_v not_o the_o folly_n of_o this_o your_o exclamation_n in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o fond_a supposition_n of_o the_o question_n yea_o a_o take_n of_o that_o as_o certain_a which_o not_o only_o catholik_o but_o also_o learned_a protestant_n deny_v yourself_o have_v you_o not_o late_o since_o the_o write_n of_o this_o reply_n approve_v montague_n approve_v the_o appeal_v unto_o caesar_n of_o richard_n montague_n a_o book_n by_o order_n of_o his_o majesty_n in_o which_o that_o author_n do_v often_o and_o earnest_o 141._o earnest_o second_o part_n c._n 5._o pag._n 141._o profess_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v that_o antichrist_n further_o affirm_v that_o protestant_n out_o of_o affection_n have_v be_v to_o violent_o forward_a to_o pronounce_v the_o pope_n be_v that_o man_n of_o sin_n &_o son_n of_o perdition_n yea_o that_o some_o out_o of_o violent_a and_o transport_v passion_n no_o doubt_n make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n whereas_o their_o argument_n be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o force_n of_o demonstrative_a as_o they_o be_v not_o persuasive_a thus_o this_o author_n in_o that_o book_n which_o you_o have_v
ãâã_d tradition_n unwritten_a &_o that_o this_o be_v the_o prime_a ground_n of_o âayth_n more_o fundamental_a than_o scripture_n you_o most_o large_o labour_v to_o refel_v and_o term_v it_o pag._n 91._o a_o anti-âhristian_a and_o impudent_a assertion_n to_o depress_v the_o write_a âord_n of_o god_n &_o exalt_v the_o profane_a bastardly_a apocryphal_a tradition_n of_o the_o pope_n this_o be_v bitter_a enough_o &_o yet_o cerââynly_o you_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n maintain_v and_o uphold_v the_o scripture_n in_o authority_n or_o ãâã_d you_o speak_v inept_o not_o know_v what_o you_o affirm_v for_o some_o two_o page_n before_o this_o your_o reproachful_a word_n to_o wit_n pag._n 89._o you_o thus_o distinguish_v about_o tradition_n the_o church_n have_v no_o perpetual_a tradition_n but_o such_o as_o be_v either_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o which_o be_v subseruient_fw-fr to_o maintain_v the_o faith_n verity_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o thus_o you_o i_o demand_v of_o you_o these_o subseruient_fw-fr traditious_a about_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n be_v they_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o they_o be_v your_o distinction_n be_v senseless_a one_o member_n thereof_o not_o be_v condistinct_a against_o the_o other_o for_o if_o subseruient_fw-fr tradition_n be_v tradition_n contain_v in_o scripture_n what_o more_o inept_v then_o to_o say_v tradition_n either_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o subseruient_fw-fr if_o they_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o condistinct_a from_o they_o then_o according_a to_o your_o distinction_n there_o be_v some_o tradition_n not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n which_o maintain_v and_o uphold_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o verity_n and_o doctrine_n thereof_o if_o you_o grant_v this_o as_o you_o must_v unless_o you_o will_v grant_v your_o distinction_n be_v void_a of_o judgement_n then_o must_v you_o also_o grant_v tradition_n to_o be_v more_o fundamental_a than_o scripture_n for_o thus_o i_o argue_v that_o which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v more_o fundamental_a than_o scripture_n that_o which_o do_v maintain_v and_o uphold_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la that_o which_o do_v uphold_v and_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v more_o fundamental_a than_o scripture_n now_o yourself_o ascribe_v unto_o tradition_n subseruient_fw-fr condistinct_a against_o write_a tradition_n the_o office_n of_o mantayn_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n so_o that_o either_o you_o know_v not_o what_o you_o do_v write_v or_o else_o by_o your_o own_o distinction_n you_o be_v convince_v to_o establish_v that_o very_a doctrine_n which_o elsewhere_o you_o so_o sharp_o censure_v as_o antichristian_a impudent_a profane_a bastardly_a certain_o you_o be_v a_o silly_a disputant_n about_o matter_n of_o theodogy_n no_o more_o sense_n or_o judgement_n be_v there_o in_o the_o distinction_n you_o make_v of_o holy_a believer_n into_o triumphant_a &_o militant_a pag._n 49._o the_o term_n church_n say_v you_o be_v take_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o universal_a number_n of_o holy_a believer_n in_o all_o age_n and_o more_o strict_o for_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o holy_a believer_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n hebr._n 12.23_o apoc._n 5.9_o ephes._n 5.25.27_o and_o thus_o it_o comprehend_v both_o the_o church_n militant_a &_o triumphant_a thus_o you_o distinguish_v the_o church_n of_o believer_n into_o militant_a and_o triumphant_a whence_o it_o be_v consequent_a that_o the_o triumphant_a saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v believer_n what_o more_o ridiculous_a and_o against_o the_o prime_n and_o know_a notion_n of_o triumphant_a saint_n it_o may_v be_v god_n permit_v you_o to_o stumble_v upon_o this_o gross_a simplicity_n through_o want_n of_o reflection_n that_o you_o may_v thereby_o be_v warn_v to_o reflect_v upon_o the_o foulness_n of_o another_o doctrine_n which_o witting_o &_o wilful_o you_o maintain_v though_o be_v no_o less_o exorbitant_a than_o this_o the_o doctrine_n be_v that_o your_o protestant_a militant_a church_n be_v a_o multitude_n who_o 309._o who_o john_n white_a in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 309._o by_o divine_a illumination_n see_v manifest_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n believe_v of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o other_o mysterye_n &_o that_o you_o be_v like_v not_o unto_o man_n 108._o man_n francis_n white_a orthodox_n pag._n 108._o which_o see_v a_o far_o off_o a_o certain_a obscure_a glimmer_a of_o the_o light_n but_o unto_o man_n that_o come_n to_o the_o place_n where_o the_o light_n be_v behold_v the_o say_a light_n in_o itself_o very_o to_o term_v the_o church_n militant_a a_o multitude_n of_o beholder_n resolve_v of_o truth_n by_o manifest_a light_n &_o evidence_n be_v as_o exotic_a and_o as_o idle_a gibberish_n in_o christian_a theology_n as_o to_o call_v the_o church_n triumphant_a a_o multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o war_n and_o walk_v by_o faith_n as_o for_o your_o protestant_a triumphant_a church_n if_o they_o do_v not_o former_o believe_v in_o this_o life_n the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o see_v the_o light_n lustre_n and_o resplendent_a verity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o as_o you_o pretend_v they_o do_v not_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o they_o be_v believer_n in_o the_o next_o world_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o number_n of_o they_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v 2.9_o joan._n 2.9_o credunt_fw-la &_o contremiscunt_fw-la ignorance_n in_o scripture_n sect_n iv_o concern_v holy_a scripture_n you_o brag_v intolerable_o in_o every_o page_n of_o your_o reply_n how_o the_o same_o stand_v clear_o on_o your_o side_n and_o that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v any_o of_o the_o nine_o point_n by_o scripture_n how_o vain_a this_o your_o vant_n be_v do_v appear_v by_o the_o rejoinder_n wherein_o you_o be_v prove_v almost_o in_o every_o controversy_n to_o forsake_v the_o literal_a and_o plain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o devise_v now_o figurative_a typical_a and_o mystical_a interpretation_n how_o idle_o also_o you_o dispute_v out_o of_o scripture_n for_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n which_o you_o most_o confident_o maintain_v in_o your_o religion_n be_v make_v evident_a by_o what_o have_v be_v show_v concern_v your_o argue_v for_o the_o pretend_a divine_a ordinance_n bind_v ignorant_a layman_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n notwithstanding_o that_o your_o ignorance_n herein_o may_v more_o indeniable_o appear_v i_o will_v add_v here_o some_o other_o argument_n and_o token_n of_o the_o same_o to_o wit_n unto_o what_o shameful_a shift_n you_o be_v force_v to_o answer_v scripture_n bring_v by_o your_o adversary_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n you_o deny_v the_o text_n and_o context_n of_o scripture_n §._o 1._o first_o many_o time_n you_o be_v enforce_v by_o your_o adversary_n when_o you_o can_v answer_v to_o deny_v the_o âext_n &_o context_n of_o scripture_n whereof_o i_o allege_v two_o example's_n the_o jesuit_n pag._n 480._o to_o prove_v that_o christ_n promise_v eternal_a life_n unto_o the_o worthy_a participant_a âf_n the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n bring_v âhe_n word_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 6._o qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la hunc_fw-la âanem_fw-la vivet_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v âue_v for_o ever_o you_o in_o the_o place_n quote_v answer_n the_o scripture_n john_n 6.51_o say_v not_o whosoever_o eat_v sacramental_a bread_n without_o wine_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o but_o if_o any_o ââte_n this_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o wit_n christ_n ââsus_fw-la incarnate_a shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o then_o it_o follow_v ânlesse_a you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v ãâã_d blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o john_n 5.53_o thus_o ãâã_d now_o mark_v unto_o what_o strait_n maugre_o your_o ââagging_n you_o be_v bring_v by_o the_o jesuite_n first_o you_o be_v not_o acknowledge_v these_o word_n cite_v by_o the_o jesuit_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ever_o to_o be_v our_o ââuiours_n but_o only_o those_o if_o any_o shall_v eat_v etc._n etc._n wherââ_n they_o be_v our_o saviour_n &_o the_o express_a text_n of_o scripture_n in_o so_o many_o word_n &_o syllable_n john_n 6.59_o which_o ââyth_v he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ever_o seâândly_o you_o be_v compel_v to_o answer_v that_o christ_n ââter_v he_o have_v say_v he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ââer_n say_v unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o ââoud_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o âou_fw-mi by_o which_o ensue_a sentence_n he_o do_v as_o you_o think_v âeclare_v the_o former_a if_o any_o eat_v this_o bread_n etc._n etc._n that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o sacramental_a bread_n without_o wine_n this_o be_v
against_o the_o context_n and_o order_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n word_n this_o sentence_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o be_v five_o sentence_n or_o verse_n after_o this_o other_o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n yea_o these_o word_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ever_o be_v absolute_o the_o very_a last_o wherewith_o christ_n shut_v up_o his_o discourse_n about_o sacramental_a take_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n wherefore_o not_o to_o be_v force_v to_o grant_v that_o christ_n promise_v as_o much_o to_o the_o eat_n of_o sacramental_a bread_n only_o as_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v both_o you_o be_v force_v to_o deny_v the_o text_n and_o context_n of_o god_n word_n if_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n indeed_o speak_v the_o word_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o but_o that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o sacramental_a bread_n nor_o of_o sacramental_a eat_n i_o reply_v first_o why_o then_o do_v you_o not_o acknowledge_v this_o text_n aswell_o as_o this_o other_o if_o any_o eat_v this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o second_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o for_o that_o the_o seven_o chap._n of_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o sacramental_a eat_n &_o drink_v yourself_o affirm_v many_o time_n in_o this_o reply_n as_o pag._n 395._o lin_v 8._o pag._n 406._o lin_v 13._o &_o pag._n 466._o lin_v 20._o a_o second_o example_n of_o your_o be_v force_v to_o deny_v or_o not_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o text_n of_o god_n word_n be_v find_v pag._n 75._o there_o the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v visible_o universal_a refer_v himself_o for_o proof_n to_o the_o apocalips_n 20._o v._o 8._o you_o in_o lieu_n of_o the_o eight_o verse_n cite_v the_o seven_o then_o shall_v satan_n be_v let_v loose_a &_o shall_v go_v forth_o and_o seduce_v nation_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n gog_n and_o magog_n &_o shall_v gather_v they_o into_o a_o battle_n the_o number_n of_o who_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n which_o text_n be_v impertinent_a for_o it_o prove_v that_o the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v for_o multitude_n of_o man_n innumerable_a not_o the_o universal_a diffusion_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o his_o reign_n why_o stop_v you_o at_o the_o seaâenth_fw-mi verse_n why_o will_v you_o not_o proceed_v to_o set_v âowne_n the_o word_n of_o the_o eight_o that_o be_v under_o your_o âyes_n unto_o which_o the_o jesuit_n marginal_a quotation_n refer_v you_o very_o you_o see_v that_o they_o prove_v the_o jesuit_n intent_n so_o clear_o as_o you_o know_v not_o what_o to_o reâly_o for_o the_o text_n say_v 8.20_o say_v apoc._n 8.20_o of_o antichrists_n pursuivant_n âhey_n go_v over_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_a aâout_n the_o camp_n of_o saint_n and_o thc_a belove_a city_n by_o which_o âlace_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o camp_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o beloved_a city_n to_o wit_n the_o church_n persecute_v by_o antiâhrist_n in_o his_o reign_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o âhe_n earth_n âou_fw-mi be_v force_v to_o go_v against_o christ_n express_a word_n §._o 2._o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 409._o argue_v in_o this_o sort_n if_o god_n can_v put_v a_o whole_a camel_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n be_v he_o not_o âble_n to_o put_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o a_o consecrate_a host_n âut_fw-la god_n can_v put_v a_o camel_n in_o a_o needle_n eye_n witness_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 19_o v._n 24.25.26_o where_o have_v say_v it_o be_v âore_o easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n then_o âor_a a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whenâis_fw-la disciple_n do_v much_o wonder_n thereat_o demand_v who_o then_o can_v be_v save_v he_o answer_v with_o man_n this_o ãâã_d impossible_a but_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a unto_o god_n our_o answer_n say_v you_o pag_n 412._o be_v that_o these_o wordsâll_a âll_z thing_n be_v possible_a to_o god_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o latter_a âart_n of_o christ_n speech_n touch_v the_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o âeaven_n and_o not_o to_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o the_o needle_n ãâã_d all_o thing_n agreeable_a to_o truth_n and_o which_o god_n will_v have_v do_v be_v possible_a but_o that_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o truth_n for_o a_o camel_n retain_v his_o quantity_n with_o the_o whole_a body_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n or_o that_o god_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v do_v deserve_v to_o be_v credit_v when_o the_o adversary_n prove_v it_o by_o divine_a revelation_n or_o by_o other_o demonstration_n thus_o you_o force_v by_o your_o adversary_n to_o deny_v the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n as_o i_o demonstrate_v by_o three_o argument_n first_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v name_v many_o thing_n as_o difficile_a hard_a and_o impossible_a with_o man_n conclude_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n only_o but_o all_o be_v possible_a with_o god_n then_o to_o say_v that_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n only_o &_o not_o all_o be_v possible_a to_o god_n be_v direct_o to_o contradict_v our_o saviour_n &_o to_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n our_o saviour_n have_v name_v many_o thing_n as_o hard_o difficile_a and_o impossible_a unto_o man_n to_o wit_n that_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n and_o that_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n conclude_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n only_o but_o all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n apud_fw-la deuâ_n omne_fw-la possibilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la 10.27_o sunt_fw-la matth._n 19.16_o mar._n 10.27_o all_o these_o hard_a and_o difficile_a thing_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n ergo_fw-la you_o in_o say_v that_o one_o sort_n of_o these_o thing_n by_o he_o name_v as_o hard_a &_o difficile_a be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n do_v direct_o contradict_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n second_o to_o affirm_v that_o a_o camel_n passage_n through_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o direct_o against_o this_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n then_o to_o say_v that_o a_o rich_a man_n entrance_n into_o heaven_n be_v impossible_a this_o i_o prove_v if_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o of_o the_o two_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n be_v more_o easy_a that_o be_v less_o difficile_a then_o to_o deny_v the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n to_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o direct_o against_o our_o saviour_n âord_n then_o so_o to_o affirm_v of_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o ãâã_d kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o if_o thing_n more_o easy_a &_o ââsse_n difficile_a be_v impossible_a how_o much_o more_o thing_n ââsse_n easy_a and_o more_o difficile_a if_o we_o may_v with_o truth_n affirm_v that_o god_n can_v do_v what_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n we_o know_v to_o be_v more_o easy_a much_o rather_o may_v we_o affirm_v god_n can_v do_v what_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v more_o difficile_a this_o be_v clear_a âut_v our_o saviour_n say_v most_o express_o that_o it_o be_v more_o eaây_n that_o be_v less_o difficile_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o â_o needle_n eye_n then_o for_o a_o richman_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ergo_fw-la your_o say_v the_o pasâing_n of_o a_o camel_n through_o a_o needle_n eye_n to_o be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o against_o this_o place_n of_o his_o word_n âhen_o have_v you_o so_o affirm_v of_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v inâo_o heaven_n three_o if_o this_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v refer_v direct_o proper_o and_o specialây_n unto_o a_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n &_o not_o unto_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o heaven_n than_o you_o do_v direct_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n but_o that_o âhis_v speech_n all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v in_o this_o manner_n âeferred_v unto_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n &_o not_o unto_o the_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o heaven_n âs_v evident_a by_o the_o drift_n of_o this_o place_n for_o our_o lord_n by_o this_o discourse_n do_v direct_o intend_v to_o show_v not_o a_o rich_a man_n salvation_n to_o be_v possible_a but_o the_o apostle_n argument_n which_o move_v they_o to_o despair_v of_o the_o salvation_n of_o rich-man_n not_o to_o be_v good_a they_o hear_v our_o saviour_n say_v it_o be_v more_o easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n then_o that_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v in_o
the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n suppose_v in_o their_o thought_n as_o most_o certain_a that_o a_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n be_v altogether_o impossible_a conclude_v what_o richman_n then_o can_v be_v save_v our_o saviour_n answer_v unto_o the_o argument_n that_o so_o perplex_a they_o say_v though_o these_o thing_n be_v impossible_a with_o man_n yet_o all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v what_o you_o suppose_v in_o your_o thought_n as_o certain_a that_o a_o camel_n can_v pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n be_v false_a because_o god_n be_v omnipotent_a and_o so_o though_o such_o thing_n be_v impossible_a with_o man_n yet_o all_o be_v possible_a unto_o he_o now_o your_o supposition_n be_v false_a your_o argument_n that_o rich-man_n can_v be_v save_v be_v not_o solid_a for_o from_o my_o word_n it_o be_v more_o easy_a for_o a_o camel_n etc._n etc._n you_o can_v only_o enforce_v that_o as_o the_o camel_n can_v pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n but_o by_o the_o ompotency_n of_o the_o divine_a hand_n so_o the_o richman_n can_v be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o divine_a grace_n hence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o our_o saviour_n do_v direct_o intend_v to_o teach_v the_o possibility_n of_o a_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n so_o destroy_v the_o ground_n on_o which_o the_o apostle_n do_v build_v their_o false_a persuasion_n that_o rich_a man_n can_v not_o be_v save_v but_o this_o you_o avouch_v not_o to_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n therefore_o you_o be_v force_v by_o the_o jesuit_n to_o deny_v god_n express_a word_n howsoever_o you_o brag_v that_o the_o jesuit_n argue_v from_o scripture_n be_v wondrous_a weak_a you_o be_v force_v to_o deny_v the_o creed_n §._o 3._o the_o jesuite_n pag._n 409._o thus_o argue_v if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v mortal_a and_o passable_a can_v penetrate_v with_o the_o body_n of_o his_o bless_a mother_n and_o come_v out_o of_o her_o womb_n the_o same_o still_o remain_v entire_a as_o we_o confess_v in_o the_o creed_n natum_fw-la de_fw-la maria_fw-la virgin_n why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o same_o body_n be_v now_o glorious_a &_o immortal_a and_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v spiritual_a penetrate_v the_o quantity_n of_o ãâã_d bread_n and_o enclose_v itself_o whole_o and_o entire_o within_o the_o ãâã_d compass_v thereof_o you_o answer_v pag._n 411._o the_o bless_a virgin_n in_o her_o âravell_n in_o puerperio_fw-la bear_v not_o christ_n in_o a_o different_a âanner_n from_o other_o woman_n luc._n 2.23_o and_o what_o a_o sophistical_a inference_n be_v this_o the_o creed_n have_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n meaning_n according_a to_o conception_n and_o generaââons_n and_o clearness_n from_o the_o company_n of_o man_n ergo_fw-la the_o âody_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v not_o open_v at_o the_o time_n of_o hisâyrth_n âyrth_z thus_o you_o who_o assertion_n that_o the_o creed_n onây_o say_v that_o according_a to_o conception_n the_o bless_a virâin_n be_v clear_a from_o the_o company_n of_o man_n be_v open_a denial_n of_o a_o principal_a part_n thereof_o for_o the_o creed_n do_v âot_n only_o say_v our_o lord_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o do_v import_v his_o mother_n purity_n &_o cleerne_v ârom_o the_o company_n of_o man_n in_o his_o generation_n but_o the_o âurity_n of_o his_o conception_n be_v declare_v the_o creed_n add_v as_o a_o new_a point_n of_o faith_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n require_v that_o we_o believe_v she_o be_v a_o virgin_n that_o âs_n incorrupt_a and_o entire_a in_o her_o childbirth_n so_o that_o âour_n interpretation_n whereby_o you_o confound_v her_o virginity_n in_o generation_n with_o her_o virginity_n in_o childbirth_n which_o the_o creed_n do_v so_o exact_o distinguish_v be_v âlaine_v denial_n of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o your_o term_v this_o our_o simple_a sincere_a belief_n of_o the_o word_n of_o âhe_n creed_n a_o sophistical_a inferrence_n be_v first_o ridiculous_a âor_a the_o believe_v of_o the_o text_n of_o god_n word_n as_o it_o ââands_v can_v be_v term_v a_o inference_n much_o less_o a_o sophistical_a inference_n second_o it_o be_v not_o only_o foolish_a but_o also_o impious_a be_v a_o reproach_n to_o the_o perpetual_a faith_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n as_o ecclesia_fw-la as_o augustin_n enchyrid_n cap._n 34._o de_fw-fr virginenasci_fw-la oportebat_fw-la quem_fw-la matris_fw-la fides_fw-la non_fw-la libido_fw-la conceperat_fw-la quòd_fw-la si_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la nascentem_fw-la corrumperetur_fw-la eius_fw-la integritas_fw-la non_fw-la iam_fw-la ille_fw-la de_fw-la virgine_fw-la nasceretur_fw-la eumîue_fw-la falsò_fw-la quod_fw-la absit_fw-la the_o virgin_n maria_n natâ_n tota_fw-la confitaretur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la s._n aug._n do_v testify_v it_o be_v say_v he_o necessary_a that_o he_o who_o the_o faith_n not_o the_o lust_n of_o his_o mother_n have_v conceive_v shall_v also_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n for_o if_o the_o integrity_n of_o his_o mother_n have_v be_v break_v in_o this_o be_v bear_v of_o she_o than_o have_v he_o not_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n and_o then_o which_o god_n forbid_v false_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n profess_v in_o the_o creed_n natum_fw-la de_fw-fr maria_n virgin_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n the_o same_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n namely_o by_o s._n generavit_fw-la s._n ambros._n epist._n 81._o de_fw-fr via_fw-la iniquitatis_fw-la poduntur_fw-la dicere_fw-la virgo_fw-la concepit_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la virgo_fw-la generavit_fw-la ambrose_n who_o term_n it_o wicked_a &_o perverse_a to_o say_v as_o you_o do_v that_o in_o her_o generation_n the_o bless_a mother_n be_v incorrupt_a and_o entire_a not_o in_o her_o childbirth_n she_o say_v s._n ambrose_n that_o can_v conceive_v he_o be_v a_o virgin_n incorrupt_a can_v she_o not_o bring_v he_o forth_o remain_v a_o virgin_n incorrupt_a if_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o priest_n let_v they_o believe_v the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n dixit_fw-la prophet_n non_fw-la concepturam_fw-la tantummodo_fw-la virginem_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o parituram_fw-la virginem_fw-la propheta_fw-la dixit_fw-la a_o virgin_n shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n let_v they_o believe_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v pure_o &_o inviolat_o keep_v to_o wit_n which_o say_v not_o only_o conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o also_o bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n what_o you_o object_n out_o of_o s._n luke_n vers_fw-la 23._o every_o male-child_n that_o open_v the_o womb_n shall_v be_v holy_a unto_o our_o lord_n have_v be_v answer_v long_o ago_o and_o declare_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o child_n open_v the_o womb_n understand_v the_o child_n that_o come_v first_o out_o of_o the_o womb_n because_o that_o child_n common_o do_v &_o by_o course_n of_o nature_n must_v needs_o open_a the_o womb_n hence_o he_o be_v term_v the_o child_n open_v the_o womb_n though_o it_o happen_v that_o he_o do_v not_o open_v the_o womb_n as_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o babylonian_a furnace_n may_v be_v term_v a_o thing_n which_o consume_v what_o be_v cast_v into_o it_o because_o common_o it_o do_v so_o and_o by_o course_n of_o nature_n it_o must_v needs_o do_v so_o though_o there_o by_o divine_a miracle_n the_o contrary_n do_v happen_v which_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v so_o vulgar_a as_o it_o be_v by_o you_o use_v even_o in_o this_o place_n perchance_o without_o reflection_n for_o you_o term_v âhe_v bless_v virgin_n bring_v forth_o of_o our_o lord_n travel_v i_o think_v you_o be_v not_o impious_o persuade_v with_o the_o jew_n that_o she_o bring_v he_o forth_o with_o âabour_n and_o pain_n as_o other_o woman_n do_v but_o you_o âall_n her_o childbyrth_n travel_n because_o commonây_v and_o natural_o the_o same_o be_v still_o join_v with_o labour_n ând_v travel_n in_o this_o sort_n say_v the_o luc._n the_o quod_fw-la ait_fw-la ad_fw-la aperiens_fw-la vuluam_fw-la consueto_fw-la nativitatis_fw-la more_fw-it loquor_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la sacri_fw-la ventris_fw-la hospitium_fw-la quòd_fw-la ingressus_fw-la sanctificarat_fw-la egressus_fw-la devirginasse_n credendus_fw-la sit_fw-la iuxta_fw-la haereticos_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la beatam_fw-la mariam_n virginem_fw-la fuisse_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la paritum_fw-la sed_fw-la iuxta_fw-la fidem_fw-la catholicam_fw-la clauso_fw-la virgin_n utero_fw-la quasi_fw-la sponsus_fw-la svo_fw-la pocessit_fw-la ex_fw-la thalamo_fw-la ven._n beda_n in_o cap._n 2._o luc._n father_n the_o scripture_n say_v of_o our_o saviour_n the_o male-child_n open_v the_o womb_n consueto_fw-la nativitatis_fw-la more_fw-it loquor_fw-la speak_v accord_v to_o that_o which_o common_o do_v happen_v in_o the_o birth_n âf_n such_o child_n not_o that_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o our_o lord_n in_o âis_n go_v forth_o do_v break_v the_o integrity_n of_o the_o virgin_n closet_n which_o by_o his_o entrance_n he_o have_v sanctify_v as_o heretic_n
this_o place_n by_o cog_a in_o your_o own_o conceit_n as_o it_o be_v the_o very_a text_n to_o wit_n that_o our_o saviour_n by_o these_o word_n give_v a_o command_n to_o use_v scripture_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a he_o do_v not_o by_o way_n of_o command_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n search_v the_o scripture_n but_o by_o way_n of_o permission_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o obstinacy_n whereby_o they_o will_v not_o without_o scripture_n believe_v in_o he_o upon_o other_o most_o sufficient_a divine_a testimony_n so_o that_o search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o you_o think_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n have_v this_o sense_n see_v you_o will_v not_o be_v win_v to_o believe_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n nor_o of_o my_o miracle_n nor_o of_o my_o father_n voice_n from_o heaven_n but_o appeal_v from_o these_o testimony_n unto_o scripture_n think_v that_o in_o they_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n search_v the_o scripture_n in_o god_n name_n i_o be_o content_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v not_o superficial_o look_v upon_o they_o but_o search_v deep_o into_o they_o for_o be_v thus_o search_v into_o they_o yield_v testimony_n unto_o i_o certain_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v be_v of_o the_o protestant_n mind_n and_o will_v have_v give_v the_o precept_n they_o pretend_v he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v to_o the_o jew_n search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o you_o think_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n but_o search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o only_o eternal_a life_n be_v to_o be_v have_v or_o because_o nothing_o necessary_a unto_o eternal_a life_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v until_o it_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o they_o this_o he_o do_v not_o say_v but_o rather_o rebuke_v the_o jew_n for_o this_o their_o ministerial_a conceit_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v upon_o any_o other_o testimony_n without_o scripture_n he_o do_v not_o therefore_o command_v they_o to_o use_v the_o scripture_n but_o see_v they_o obstinate_o addict_v unto_o only_a scripture_n he_o permit_v they_o to_o proceed_v in_o their_o own_o way_n even_o as_o when_o protestant_n can_v be_v win_v to_o believe_v neither_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n that_o be_v the_o consent_n of_o father_n nor_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n work_n that_o be_v of_o miracle_n do_v daily_o in_o his_o church_n nor_o the_o father_n lively_a voice_n from_o heaven_n that_o be_v god_n word_n unwritten_a we_o at_o last_o say_v unto_o they_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o even_o they_o give_v testimony_n unto_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n hence_o two_o thing_n appear_v first_o that_o your_o two_o assertion_n that_o christ_n say_v search_n the_o scripture_n do_v command_v and_o command_v even_o simple_a people_n to_o use_v scripture_n be_v two_o fancy_n of_o your_o own_o foist_v into_o the_o scripture_n not_o by_o way_n of_o interpretation_n but_o by_o way_n of_o historical_a relation_n of_o the_o sacred_a text_n which_o be_v gross_a abuse_n thereof_o second_o that_o if_o we_o search_v deep_o into_o this_o text_n search_v the_o scripture_n the_o same_o do_v clear_o condemn_v the_o protestant_a fancy_n that_o only_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o show_v this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o ground_n and_o principle_n of_o jewish_a infidelity_n the_o text_n matth._n 24.24_o that_o even_o the_o elect_v be_v deceive_v be_v it_o possible_a gross_o apply_v thus_o you_o write_v pag._n 586._o although_o the_o tradition_n and_o teach_v of_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a yet_o unlearned_a people_n where_o they_o enjoy_v the_o free_a use_n of_o scripture_n as_o in_o ancient_a time_n all_o people_n do_v and_o if_o they_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n god_n bless_v his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o ordinary_o assi_v they_o by_o grace_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v to_o damnation_n math._n 24.24_o thus_o you_o encourage_v simple_a people_n to_o be_v proud_a and_o obstinate_a in_o their_o private_a fancy_n against_o the_o teach_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o this_o speech_n you_o assure_v they_o that_o read_v their_o vulgar_a bible_n if_o they_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n though_o they_o will_v not_o regard_v the_o church_n as_o the_o pillar_n ground_n and_o infallible_a mistress_n of_o truth_n yet_o god_n will_v so_o bless_v and_o assist_v they_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v into_o damnable_a error_n now_o what_o be_v the_o bane_n of_o christianity_n but_o this_o false_a and_o proud_a persuasion_n insert_v into_o the_o head_n of_o sot_n trinitarian_n anabaptist_n arian_n brownist_n familian_n do_v they_o not_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n who_o to_o that_o end_n so_o studious_o peruse_v their_o bible_n be_v they_o not_o careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n that_o go_v so_o ready_o to_o the_o fire_n rather_o than_o abandon_v the_o doctrine_n which_o by_o their_o skill_n in_o the_o vulgar_a bible_n they_o judge_v to_o be_v the_o save_a truth_n in_o these_o wretch_n you_o may_v see_v how_o in_o man_n desirous_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n god_n bless_v the_o ordinance_n of_o read_v the_o vulgar_a bible_n without_o regard_n have_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o infallible_a mistress_n and_o as_o your_o doctrine_n be_v the_o seed_n &_o springe_n of_o heresy_n so_o be_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n matth._n 24.24_o most_o violent_o draw_v to_o confirm_v it_o for_o what_o say_v the_o text_n they_o the_o false_a prophet_n shall_v do_v great_a sign_n &_o wonder_n that_o even_o the_o elect_v be_v induce_v into_o error_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a by_o which_o text_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o elect_a people_n of_o god_n can_v be_v final_o entrap_v in_o damnable_a error_n this_o be_v understand_v as_o divine_v speak_v in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la that_o be_v they_o can_v be_v deceive_v because_o god_n ordain_v and_o foresee_v that_o they_o shall_v use_v the_o mean_n to_o know_v save_v truth_n which_o mean_n be_v to_o cleave_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o trust_v their_o own_o skill_n now_o then_o with_o what_o engine_n can_v you_o from_o this_o truth_n wrest_v your_o paradox_n that_o man_n desirous_a of_o the_o truth_n read_v the_o vulgar_a bible_n can_v be_v damn_v be_v all_o man_n desirous_a of_o the_o truth_n that_o read_v the_o bible_n god_n elect_a if_o heretic_n dispute_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o elect_n can_v be_v seduce_v unto_o damnation_n ergo_fw-la if_o they_o presume_v on_o their_o skill_n in_o the_o bible_n not_o respect_v the_o church_n doctrine_n as_o infallible_a they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v unto_o damnation_n why_o may_v not_o murderer_n argue_v in_o like_a sort_n the_o elect_a can_v be_v damn_v therefore_o if_o they_o commit_v murder_v every_o day_n and_o so_o persevere_v until_o the_o end_n they_o can_v be_v damn_v this_o argument_n be_v as_o good_a as_o you_o for_o the_o contemner_n of_o the_o church_n can_v no_o more_o be_v save_v they_o murderer_n if_o our_o saviour_n say_v true_a who_o so_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n the_o text_n act._n 17.11_o about_o the_o beroean_n abuse_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n of_o encourage_v simple_a people_n to_o follow_v their_o fancy_n get_v by_o read_v their_o vulgar_a bible_n you_o say_v pag._n â87_n unlearned_a people_n by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o scripture_n may_v certain_o know_v whether_o it_o err_v or_o not_o act._n 17.11_o thus_o you_o what_o say_v the_o text_n that_o thence_o you_o may_v make_v such_o deduction_n these_o be_v more_o noble_a than_o those_o of_o thessalonica_n who_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n search_v daily_o whether_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o now_o behold_v your_o manifold_a abuse_n of_o this_o sacred_a narration_n first_o the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v these_o beroean_n be_v unlearned_a how_o then_o can_v you_o hence_o conclude_v any_o thing_n for_o the_o ability_n of_o unlearned_a people_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n again_o the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v that_o by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n with_o scripture_n they_o come_v to_o know_v certain_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n be_v true_a but_o only_o that_o believe_v his_o doctrine_n they_o search_v the_o scripture_n about_o the_o same_o without_o mention_n of_o the_o success_n of_o their_o search_n and_o if_o they_o be_v resolve_v by_o scripture_n this_o be_v only_o in_o one_o point_n to_o wit_n whether_o jesus_n be_v the_o messiah_n about_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a and_o express_v how_o they_o can_v you_o hence_o prove_v that_o unlearned_a people_n may_v know_v certain_o whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_a by_o compare_v the_o same_o
for_o they_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o she_o have_v no_o milk_n in_o her_o two_o breast_n but_o write_v doctrine_n but_o he_o say_v she_o two_o breast_n be_v the_o two_o testament_n of_o divine_a scripture_n hence_o you_o may_v gather_v that_o in_o each_o of_o her_o breast_n in_o each_o of_o the_o testament_n the_o milk_n of_o scripture_n be_v contain_v but_o that_o only_o the_o milk_n of_o write_a doctrine_n be_v in_o they_o contain_v you_o can_v from_o this_o text_n true_o cite_v infer_v &_o therefore_o both_o by_o addition_n and_o transposition_n of_o word_n you_o help_v the_o dice_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o credit_n or_o authority_n but_o from_o scripture_n and_o that_o though_o this_o tradition_n may_v be_v false_a yet_o faith_n will_v subsist_v because_o there_o remain_v always_o a_o high_a and_o more_o sovereign_a judge_n to_o wit_n god_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v this_o i_o say_v you_o c_o you_o pag._n 90._o in_o margin_n lit_fw-fr c_o cite_v this_o text_n of_o intellectus_fw-la of_o augustin_n lib._n 11._o ãâã_d faust._n c._n â_o tanquam_fw-la in_o sede_fw-la quâdam_fw-la in_o sublimi_fw-la collocata_fw-la est_fw-la cvi_fw-la seruiât_fw-la omnis_fw-la fidelis_n &_o pius_fw-la intellectus_fw-la s._n augustine_n it_o be_v place_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o high_a throne_n of_o authority_n unto_o which_o every_o faithful_a and_o pious_a understanding_n must_v be_v subject_a what_o be_v this_o why_o do_v you_o not_o name_v it_o because_o you_o dare_v not_o set_v down_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o precede_v which_o make_v clear_o against_o you_o to_o wit_v these_o etc._n these_o excellentia_fw-la canonical_a authoritatis_fw-la veteris_fw-la &_o novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la apoâstolorun_n confirmata_fw-la temporibus_fw-la per_fw-la successiones_n episcoporun_n &_o propagationes_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la in_o sede_fw-la quadam_fw-la sublimiter_n constituta_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o canonical_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n confirm_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n be_v by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o propagation_n of_o church_n place_v in_o a_o high_a throne_n of_o authority_n etc._n etc._n how_o direct_o be_v this_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n against_o that_o which_o you_o will_v prove_v thereby_o how_o have_v tradition_n no_o credit_n or_o authority_n but_o from_o scripture_n if_o the_o scripture_n by_o successive_a tradition_n of_o bishop_n hand_n so_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n have_v get_v quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n the_o high_a seat_n of_o divine_a authority_n to_o be_v honour_v as_o god_n word_n unto_o which_o every_o man_n must_v yield_v if_o this_o successive_a tradition_n on_o which_o as_o s._n augustine_n teach_v our_o persuasion_n about_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n depend_v be_v make_v weak_a &_o fallible_a by_o protestant_n how_o shall_v the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o keep_v her_o credit_n and_o authority_n in_o our_o faith_n very_o it_o can_v except_o christian_n will_v cease_v to_o rely_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o on_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o hunt_v after_o divine_a and_o apostolical_a scripture_n by_o the_o send_v and_o smell_v of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v therein_o as_o you_o do_v likewise_o by_o addition_n of_o the_o particle_n only_o you_o falsify_v the_o say_n of_o lit_fw-fr of_o pag._n 95._o lin_v 31._o &_o in_o marg._n lit_fw-fr paschasius_fw-la for_o whereas_o he_o promittit_fw-la he_o paschas_fw-la in_o matth._n c._n 28._o cum_fw-la electis_fw-la semper_fw-la adfuturum_fw-la se_fw-la promittit_fw-la say_v christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o his_o elect_n all_o day_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n you_o cite_v he_o as_o say_v only_o with_o the_o elect_a more_o gross_o in_o the_o same_o place_n you_o falsify_v druthmarus_n for_o whereas_o matth._n whereas_o in_o cap._n 28._o matth._n he_o say_v christ_n be_v with_o the_o reprobate_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o godhead_n but_o with_o the_o elect_a in_o another_o manner_n you_o make_v he_o say_v christ_n promise_v to_o be_v only_o with_o the_o elect_a contrary_a to_o his_o meaning_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o presence_n and_o perpetual_a assistance_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o unite_v unto_o his_o church_n &_o her_o pastor_n that_o they_o may_v not_o err_v but_o still_o teach_v all_o that_o he_o command_v but_o that_o presence_n whereof_o that_o text_n proper_o speak_v be_v not_o only_o afford_v unto_o the_o elect_n but_o unto_o wicked_a man_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o worthy_a communicant_n as_o yourself_o 14._o yourself_o pag._n 52._o lin_v 14._o affirm_v you_o 105._o you_o see_v pag._n 105._o rail_v bitter_o against_o the_o jesuit_n for_o prove_v that_o your_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n nor_o part_n thereof_o because_o you_o sever_v yourselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o do_v not_o join_v unto_o any_o preexistent_a christian_a society_n of_o pastor_n but_o apart_v yourselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o this_o his_o argument_n you_o rail_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o a_o whole_a leaf_n pag._n 106._o and_o 107._o where_o thus_o you_o conclude_v your_o foul_a foliall_a inuective_n they_o since_o their_o synod_n of_o trent_n have_v proceed_v from_o evil_a to_o worse_o this_o worse_o the_o minister_n in_o proof_n of_o all_o this_o bring_v nothing_o only_o in_o the_o margin_n he_o name_v the_o massacre_n of_o paris_n be_v that_o do_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v that_o prove_v obscure_v and_o outface_v of_o truth_n have_v not_o the_o protestant_n then_o slay_v be_v traitor_n against_o their_o king_n be_v not_o the_o king_n inform_v of_o their_o plot_n to_o murdâr_v he_o his_o mother_n his_o brethren_n &_o the_o cheief_a of_o his_o noble_n if_o to_o prevent_v his_o own_o instant_a death_n the_o king_n do_v by_o martial_a law_n without_o juridical_a form_n proceed_v against_o know_a rebel_n iâ_n this_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o you_o may_v say_v it_o surpass_v all_o perfidious_a stratagem_n and_o immane_a cruelty_n of_o infidel_n what_o idle_a eloquence_n be_v this_o obscure_v &_o outface_v the_o truth_n with_o forgery_n and_o sophistry_n they_o have_v conspire_v against_o kingdom_n and_o state_n they_o have_v surpass_v profess_v infidel_n in_o perfidious_a stratagem_n and_o immane_a cruelty_n and_o whereas_o they_o expel_v we_o by_o excommunication_n and_o chase_v we_o away_o from_o they_o by_o persecution_n yet_o this_o roman_a advocate_n tax_v we_o with_o schism_n &_o apostasy_n never_o remember_v what_o 1._o what_o lib._n 5._o the_o baptism_n c._n 1._o s._n augustine_n long_o since_o deliver_v the_o sacrilege_n of_o schism_n be_v then_o commit_v when_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n thus_o by_o long_o continue_v fierce_a bitter_a blast_n of_o false_a reproach_n you_o dirive_v your_o unwary_a reader_n upon_o the_o hide_a rock_n of_o a_o falsifyed_a sentence_n of_o s._n aug._n as_o though_o this_o most_o divine_a doctor_n have_v insinuate_v the_o lawfullnes_n of_o revolt_n &_o separation_n from_o all_o christian_a church_n what_o can_v be_v more_o false_a he_o dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n who_o have_v sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o christian_a world_n pretend_v that_o caecilian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n &_o other_o catholic_n have_v give_v up_o the_o holy_a bibles_n to_o the_o fire_n s._n aug._n do_v convince_v they_o of_o schism_n two_o way_n first_o because_o this_o pretence_n be_v it_o true_a be_v not_o just_a for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o of_o begin_v a_o new_a distinct_a christian_a church_n these_o be_v his_o word_n etc._n word_n augustin_n ep_v 48._o ad_fw-la vincent_n fieri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la aliqui_fw-la iustam_fw-la causam_fw-la habeant_fw-la qua_fw-la communionem_fw-la svam_fw-la separent_fw-la à _fw-la communione_fw-la orbis_n terrarum_fw-la eamîue_fw-la appellent_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la christi_fw-la quòd_fw-la se_fw-la just_a ab_fw-la omnium_fw-la gentium_fw-la communione_fw-la separaverint_fw-la ibid._n nos_fw-la ideo_fw-la certi_fw-la sumus_fw-la neminem_fw-la se_fw-la à _fw-la communione_fw-la omnium_fw-la gentium_fw-la iuââè_fw-la separare_fw-la potuisse_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o be_v certain_a that_o none_o can_v just_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o again_o it_o be_v no_o way_n possible_a that_o any_o shall_v have_v reason_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o term_v themselves_o the_o church_n because_o upon_o just_a cause_n they_o have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o society_n of_o all_o nation_n thus_o s._n aug._n what_o can_v be_v more_o direct_a against_o that_o doctrine_n for_o which_o you_o cite_v he_o or_o more_o efficacious_a to_o conclude_v that_o you_o protestant_n be_v guilty_a of_o damnable_a schism_n second_o say_v
s._n augustine_n the_o cause_n you_o donatist_n pretend_v be_v nulla_fw-la none_o at_o all_o it_o be_v a_o untruth_n 1._o untruth_n calumniarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la âumos_fw-la âactantes_fw-la d._n baptis_n l_o 5_o c_o 1._o caecilian_n have_v clear_v himself_o from_o that_o crime_n and_o be_v absolve_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o court_n yea_o though_o the_o same_o be_v true_a yet_o by_o separaverinâ_n by_o restat_fw-la uâ_n fateantur_fw-la nulla_fw-la malorum_fw-la etiam_fw-la cognitorum_fw-la tali_fw-la communione_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la maculari_fw-la ãâã_d cùm_fw-la fassi_fw-la fuerint_fw-la non_fw-la invenient_fw-la causam_fw-la cur_n se_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la separaverinâ_n your_o own_o principle_n it_o be_v convince_v to_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n wherefore_o your_o separation_n be_v not_o only_a schism_n but_o most_o eminent_a and_o notorious_a schism_n for_o than_o be_v separationis_fw-la apeââissimum_fw-la autem_fw-la sacrilegium_fw-la eminet_fw-la schismatis_fw-la cùm_fw-la nulla_fw-la fuit_fw-la causa_fw-la separationis_fw-la the_o sacrilege_n of_o schism_n most_o notorious_o eminent_a when_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o separation_n he_o do_v not_o say_v when_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n schism_n be_v commit_v as_o though_o there_o may_v be_v some_o just_a cause_n and_o then_o schism_n be_v not_o commit_v but_o when_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o all_o which_o may_v with_o any_o colour_n or_o show_v be_v pretend_v for_o separation_n than_o schism_n be_v not_o only_o commit_v for_o it_o be_v still_o commit_v when_o separation_n be_v make_v from_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n what_o cause_n soever_o be_v pretend_v but_o then_o it_o be_v notorious_o &_o most_o evident_o commit_v behold_v how_o change_v the_o text_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o against_o justice_n cog_a into_o the_o same_o the_o word_n just_a you_o make_v his_o speech_n to_o have_v a_o sense_n just_a contrary_n to_o his_o meaning_n how_o just_o may_v i_o charge_v you_o with_o obscure_v &_o outface_v of_o the_o truth_n by_o forgery_n which_o calumnious_o without_o any_o proof_n you_o object_n unto_o the_o sacred_a council_n of_o trent_n but_o like_a to_o like_v such_o a_o religion_n such_o a_o advocate_n seven_o testimony_n of_o other_o father_n falsify_v §._o 2._o let_v we_o also_o discover_v some_o of_o your_o corruption_n about_o other_o father_n beside_o s._n augustine_n for_o the_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n about_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n you_o cite_v these_o word_n of_o bapt._n of_o serm._n de_fw-fr bapt._n s._n cyprian_a christian_a religion_n find_v that_o from_o this_o scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o all_o learning_n flow_v and_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n do_v arise_v from_o this_o and_o be_v resolve_v into_o this_o these_o word_n puritan_n may_v better_v then_o you_o allege_v for_o their_o genevian_a principle_n that_o not_o only_a church-doctrine_n but_o also_o church-discipline_n must_v be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n &_o prove_v by_o the_o clear_a text_n thereof_o but_o happy_o they_o never_o see_v it_o or_o if_o they_o do_v they_o dare_v not_o be_v so_o impudent_a as_o to_o allege_v it_o as_o you_o do_v against_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o author_n for_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o whole_a volume_n of_o scripture_n but_o only_o of_o twelve_o or_o thirteen_o word_n thereof_o to_o wit_n this_o little_a sentence_n etc._n sentence_n praecipis_fw-la domine_fw-la ut_fw-la diligam_fw-la te_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr proximo_fw-la iubes_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la meam_fw-la eum_fw-la mensuram_fw-la complectar_fw-la etc._n etc._n legat_n hoc_fw-la unum_fw-la verbum_fw-la &_o in_fw-la hoc_fw-la mandato_fw-la meditetur_fw-la christiana_n religio_fw-la &_o inveniet_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la scriptura_fw-la omnium_fw-la doctrinarum_fw-la regulas_fw-la emanasse_n etc._n etc._n love_v thy_o lord_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o hart_n &_o thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o this_o will_v have_v appear_v have_v you_o not_o omit_v the_o word_n immediate_o precedent_a in_o the_o very_a same_o sentence_n let_v christian_a religion_n read_v this_o one_o word_n and_o meditate_v on_o this_o commandment_n and_o it_o shall_v find_v that_o from_o this_o scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o all_o learning_n flow_v etc._n etc._n and_o this_o example_n may_v serve_v to_o make_v evident_a to_o the_o eye_n your_o perpetual_a protestant_a impertinency_n in_o allege_v word_n of_o the_o father_n in_o which_o they_o commend_v the_o perfection_n &_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n for_o your_o fancy_n of_o only-only-on_o scripture_n for_o the_o father_n meaning_n be_v that_o all_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n in_o a_o general_a and_o confuse_v manner_n not_o so_o particular_o and_o distinct_o as_o scripture_n may_v be_v the_o sole_a rule_n for_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v clear_a for_o what_o they_o say_v of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n they_o say_v of_o some_o principal_a particle_n thereof_o as_o of_o this_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o lord_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o hart_n and_o thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o but_o no_o man_n that_o be_v in_o his_o judgement_n will_v say_v what_o this_o sole_a sentence_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n therefore_o their_o commendation_n of_o the_o plenitude_n of_o scripture_n can_v enforce_v no_o more_o then_o that_o all_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n in_o some_o general_a manner_n not_o so_o particular_o but_o that_o for_o explication_n and_o distinction_n of_o many_o point_n the_o rule_n of_o church_n tradition_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n that_o unto_o they_o that_o know_v not_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v easy_a you_o 10_o you_o pag._n 45_o lin_v 10_o cite_v s._n dominum_fw-la s._n homil._n 2._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la isa._n vidi_n dominum_fw-la chrysostome_n scripture_n be_v not_o like_a metal_n which_o have_v need_n of_o workman_n to_o dig_v they_o out_o but_o they_o deliver_v a_o treasure_n ready_a at_o hand_n to_o they_o which_o seek_v hide_v riches_n in_o they_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o thou_o look_v into_o they_o etc._n etc._n here_o you_o falsify_v the_o text_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n by_o add_v unto_o it_o to_o dig_v they_o out_o whereby_o you_o make_v both_o the_o father_n to_o contradict_v himself_o and_o his_o speech_n to_o be_v senseless_a for_o if_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v hide_v in_o the_o text_n thereof_o as_o he_o say_v how_o be_v it_o a_o treasure_n ready_a at_o hand_n without_o dig_v or_o search_v how_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o look_v into_o the_o book_n to_o find_v it_o have_v you_o dig_v deep_o into_o the_o golden_a mine_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n you_o will_v perchance_o have_v find_v out_o his_o true_a meaning_n &_o not_o have_v impose_v upon_o he_o this_o false_a and_o pernicious_a doctrine_n s._n chrysostome_n in_o get_v gold_n out_o of_o mine_n do_v consider_v that_o a_o double_a labour_n be_v to_o be_v undergo_v the_o one_o to_o dig_v out_o that_o earth_n wherewith_o gold_n be_v mingle_v the_o other_o to_o sever_v the_o gold_n from_o the_o earth_n the_o first_o labour_n he_o say_v be_v necessary_a that_o we_o find_v out_o the_o treasure_n &_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n we_o must_v say_v percipere_fw-la say_v chrysost._n homil._n 40._o in_o joan._n fodere_fw-la nos_fw-la profundius_fw-la iubet_fw-la ut_fw-la quae_fw-la altè_fw-la delitescunt_fw-la invenire_fw-la possimus_fw-la idem_n in_o gen._n homil._n 37._o indagatis_fw-la profundis_fw-la verum_fw-la sensum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la percipere_fw-la he_o not_o only_o look_v into_o the_o book_n not_o only_o attend_v to_o the_o bare_a read_n but_o we_o be_v command_v to_o dig_v deep_o that_o we_o may_v find_v out_o the_o thing_n that_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o bottom_n for_o we_o dig_v not_o for_o a_o thing_n that_o lie_v open_a and_o ready_a at_o hand_n but_o for_o a_o treasure_n that_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o deep_a thus_o s._n chrysostome_n how_o direct_o against_o his_o mind_n do_v you_o make_v he_o say_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o treasure_n so_o ready_a at_o hand_n and_o obvious_a as_o we_o need_v not_o dig_v for_o it_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o second_o labour_n to_o wit_n of_o sever_a dross_n from_o gold_n when_o the_o same_o be_v find_v this_o labour_n s._n chrysost._n say_v be_v needless_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o scripture_n etc._n in_o metallis_fw-la difficile_fw-la est_fw-la invenire_fw-la quod_fw-la venantur_fw-la etenim_fw-la cùm_fw-la metalla_fw-la terra_fw-la sint_fw-la &_o aurum_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la quam_fw-la terra_fw-la similitudo_fw-la celat_fw-la aspectum_fw-la eorum_fw-la quae_fw-la quaeruntur_fw-la in_o scripture_n non_fw-la est_fw-la eadem_fw-la ratio_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la proponitur_fw-la aurum_fw-la terrae_fw-la commixtum_fw-la sed_fw-la aurum_fw-la purum_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o mine_n say_v he_o man_n have_v difficulty_n to_o âind_v out_o what_o they_o hunt_v for_o the_o mine_n be_v earth_n and_o gold_n also_o earth_n this_o
scripture_n say_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v divine_a yet_o shall_v i_o not_o certain_o believe_v it_o except_o i_o have_v aforehand_o believe_v the_o scripture_n which_o do_v ãâã_d affirm_v to_o be_v divine_a for_o also_o in_o sundry_a place_n of_o mahoââts_n alcoran_n we_o read_v that_o the_o same_o be_v send_v of_o god_n from_o heaââââ_n yet_o do_v we_o not_o believe_v it_o be_v there_o no_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o say_n a_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n affirm_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o be_v divine_a ãâã_d then_o the_o alcoran_n and_o this_o i_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n say_v the_o book_n of_o prophet_n be_v divine_a except_o i_o ãâã_d believe_v the_o scripture_n that_o so_o say_v very_o they_o differ_v ãâã_d much_o as_o hell_n and_o heaven_n as_o blasphemy_n and_o truth_n with_o hosius_n you_o join_v petrus_n soto_n to_o be_v a_o debase_a ãâã_d scripture_n a._n scripture_n pag._n 152._o in_o lit_fw-fr a._n cite_v these_o word_n as_o he_o 25._o he_o petrus_n soto_n ânstructio_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la part._n 1._o lect_n 6._o pag._n 17._o if_o he_o be_v true_o cite_v for_o in_o my_o edition_n it_o be_v pag._n 25._o quae_fw-la ãâã_d cultum_fw-la pertinent_a magis_fw-la ex_fw-la traditione_n &_o spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la âââustratione_fw-la quà m_fw-la ex_fw-la scriptura_fw-la petenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la the_o thing_n ãâã_d belong_v unto_o worship_n be_v to_o be_v take_v by_o tradition_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rather_o than_o from_o ãâã_d scripture_n thus_o you_o omit_v and_o put_v in_o ââordes_n chap_a and_o change_v the_o text._n let_v we_o ââare_n the_o author_n very_a word_n pertinent_a word_n aduerâant_fw-la hunc_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la euangelicae_fw-la modum_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la rationem_fw-la attinet_fw-la post_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la communia_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnibus_fw-la qualia_fw-la sunt_fw-la praecepta_fw-la decalogi_fw-la atque_fw-la dilectionis_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o proximi_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la christus_fw-la frequenter_a loquor_fw-la post_fw-la haec_fw-la inquam_fw-la omne_fw-la adverâant_fw-la plura_fw-la esse_fw-la quaerenda_fw-la extraditione_fw-la &_o illustratione_fw-la spiritùs_fw-la sancti_fw-la potiùs_fw-la quà m_fw-la ex_fw-la scriptura_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la cultum_fw-la pertinent_a post_fw-la haec_fw-la omne_fw-la ââuertant_fw-la plura_fw-la quaerenda_fw-la esse_fw-la ex_fw-la traditione_n &_o illustraââone_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la quà m_fw-la ex_fw-la scripture_n praecipuè_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la ââltum_fw-la pertinent_a after_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v after_o a_o âriest_n know_v not_o only_o the_o article_n and_o mystery_n of_o âayth_n but_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n and_o good_a life_n ãâã_d communia_fw-la omnibus_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la christus_fw-la frequenter_a loââitur_fw-la those_o thing_n that_o be_v common_o to_o be_v keep_v ãâã_d all_o christian_n as_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o ãâã_d like_a about_o which_o christ_n do_v frequent_o speak_v âfter_o they_o know_v these_o thing_n let_v they_o remember_v that_o more_o ââings_n yet_o be_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o rather_o by_o tradition_n and_o the_o ãâã_d ghost_n illumination_n then_o by_o the_o scripture_n spâcially_o ãâã_d thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o reverence_n in_o these_o word_n petrus_a soto_n deliver_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o thing_n concern_v matter_n not_o only_o of_o faith_n but_o also_o of_o good_a life_n that_o be_v common_a and_o must_v be_v know_v of_o all_o christian_n be_v large_o deliver_v in_o holy_a scripture_n second_o that_o post_fw-la haec_fw-la omne_fw-la after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o these_o common_a substantial_a matter_n ãâã_d for_o other_o particular_a thing_n they_o be_v to_o be_v learn_v by_o tradition_n more_o than_o by_o scripture_n hence_o i_o infer_v that_o petrus_n soto_n by_o the_o word_n quae_fw-la ad_fw-la cultum_fw-la pertinent_a do_v not_o mean_v the_o main_n duty_n of_o latriae_fw-la and_o religion_n but_o reverential_a carriage_n and_o ceremony_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v clear_a for_o by_o thing_n pertinent_a unto_o reverence_n he_o mean_v thing_n that_o be_v not_o common_a unto_o all_o nor_o to_o be_v know_v and_o observe_v of_o all_o but_o the_o main_n duty_n of_o latria_n &_o religion_n be_v common_a unto_o all_o christian_n therefore_o soto_n do_v not_o mean_v they_o in_o his_o word_n quae_fw-la ad_fw-la cultum_fw-la pertinent_a but_o only_a thing_n of_o ceremonial_a reverence_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n as_o the_o author_n 26._o author_n quae_fw-la autem_fw-la in_o celebratione_fw-la baptismatis_fw-la &_o qua_fw-la ratione_fw-la agenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la ubi_fw-la est_fw-la scriptum_fw-la credendúmne_fw-la est_fw-la tantum_fw-la ministerium_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la praeparatione_fw-la solemnitate_fw-la &_o ritv_n quae_fw-la ad_fw-la eius_fw-la excitant_fw-la venerationem_fw-la traditum_fw-la esse_fw-la ibid._n pag._n 26._o do_v also_o in_o that_o place_n declare_v so_o that_o it_o be_v in_o you_o wonderful_a boldness_n by_o so_o many_o leave_n out_o by_o so_o many_o altering_n and_o transposing_n of_o word_n to_o change_v sotus_n his_o meaning_n as_o though_o he_o have_v be_v besot_v with_o swenckfeldian_a fancy_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n without_o scripture_n in_o your_o reply_n to_o the_o preface_n preface_n preface_n these_o leaf_n want_v number_n but_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sixth_o leaf_n the_o first_o side_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reply_n to_o the_o preface_n you_o say_v thââ_n the_o roman_a church_n do_v require_v that_o protestant_n send_v the_o holy_a scripture_n pack_v and_o not_o reckon_v the_o same_o among_o dââuine_a principle_n to_o make_v this_o slander_n good_a you_o ãâã_d in_o the_o margin_n church_n margin_n have_v bosius_n speak_v inconsiderat_o what_o folly_n or_o impotent_a malice_n be_v it_o to_o urge_v the_o unaduised_a speech_n of_o a_o private_a writer_n as_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n bosius_n the_o sig_n eccles._n lib._n 16._o cap._n 10._o scriptura_fw-la non_fw-la refertur_fw-la inter_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la principia_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v not_o reckon_v among_o these_o principle_n ãâã_d wit_n divine_a this_o say_n of_o bosius_n you_o repeat_v over_o &_o over_o in_o your_o book_n yea_o the_o same_o be_v twice_o repeat_v in_o your_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n preface_n in_o your_o orthodox_n you_o have_v it_o also_o and_o your_o 1â1_n your_o defence_n pag._n 1â1_n brother_n more_o often_o as_o though_o bosius_n do_v say_v the_o scripture_n be_v not_o divine_a but_o your_o slander_n be_v intolerable_a for_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o reckon_v among_o divine_a principle_n but_o only_o not_o among_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n his_o word_n be_v we_o know_v that_o among_o other_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n one_o be_v i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n now_o these_o article_n be_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a principle_n which_o must_v be_v know_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o first_o place_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o number_v among_o these_o principle_n although_o it_o be_v name_v holy_a and_o sacred_a hence_o appear_v how_o notorious_o you_o slander_n and_o falsify_v bosius_n by_o make_v he_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o number_v among_o divine_a principle_n first_o because_o he_o say_v not_o they_o be_v not_o number_v among_o divine_a principle_n but_o only_o not_o among_o the_o twelve_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v a_o truth_n so_o manifest_a as_o minister_n can_v be_v ignorant_a thereof_o if_o they_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o creed_n second_o because_o in_o that_o very_a place_n and_o sentence_n he_o do_v affirm_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v holy_a and_o sacred_a what_o be_v this_o but_o divine_a very_o this_o accusation_n that_o protestant_n if_o they_o will_v be_v catholic_n must_v send_v the_o scripture_n pack_v be_v as_o true_a as_o what_o you_o 19_o you_o answer_v to_o the_o preface_n fol._n 6._o pag._n 1._o lin_v 19_o there_o also_o affirm_v that_o they_o must_v let_v the_o roman_a nahash_n pluck_v out_o their_o right_a eye_n and_o vow_v blind_a obedience_n unto_o he_o which_o you_o prove_v because_o bonaventure_n 5._o bonaventure_n in_o vitâ_n francisci_fw-la c._n 5._o say_v that_o s._n francis_n exhort_v his_o friar_n unto_o blind_a obedience_n as_o though_o protestant_n may_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o roman_a church_n except_o they_o will_v be_v friar_n or_o that_o by_o religious_a obedience_n man_n put_v out_o their_o right_a eye_n which_o regard_v god_n and_o heaven_n and_o not_o tather_v the_o left_a which_o look_v upon_o earth_n and_o worldly_a pleasure_n have_v you_o either_o the_o right_a or_o leave_v eye_n of_o wisdom_n you_o will_v not_o write_v as_o you_o do_v have_v you_o any_o spark_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n you_o will_v not_o vent_v such_o false_a &_o odious_a slander_n have_v you_o any_o dram_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n you_o
will_v blush_v to_o confirm_v your_o slander_n with_o such_o silly_a and_o ridiculous_a proof_n other_o father_n impudent_o falsify_v as_o if_o they_o do_v deny_v what_o they_o do_v most_o constant_o maintain_v and_o prove_v §._o 4._o you_o be_v so_o bold_a in_o your_o falsehood_n as_o you_o dare_v cite_v the_o father_n for_o your_o fancy_n where_o ex_fw-la professo_fw-la even_o of_o purpose_n they_o dispute_v against_o it_o and_o prove_v the_o contrary_n pag_n 85_o lin_v 26._o you_o say_v the_o gift_n of_o do_v miracle_n be_v never_o promise_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v perpetual_a and_o be_v long_o since_o cease_v augustin_n retract_v l._n 1._o c._n 13._o now_o s._n augustine_n do_v in_o that_o place_n say_v and_o prove_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o though_o miracle_n be_v not_o now_o ordinary_o annex_v unto_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o miracle_n be_v do_v and_o frequent_o do_v so_o that_o they_o be_v for_o multitude_n innumerable_a i_o never_o mean_v say_v 13._o say_v august_n lib._n 1._o retract_v c._n 13._o he_o as_o though_o that_o now_o no_o miracle_n be_v do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o in_o milan_n a_o blindman_n receive_v his_o sight_n at_o the_o shrine_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o sundry_a the_o like_a miracle_n myself_o do_v even_o then_o know_v to_o have_v be_v do_v in_o which_o kind_n so_o many_o be_v wrought_v in_o this_o our_o age_n as_o we_o neither_o know_v they_o all_o nor_o can_v number_v they_o we_o know_v how_o dare_v you_o name_v this_o testimony_n to_o prove_v miracle_n to_o be_v cease_v also_o that_o miracle_n can_v be_v sufficient_a testimony_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o the_o i_o the_o si_fw-mi non_fw-la opera_fw-la in_o eye_n fecissem_fw-la quae_fw-la nemo_fw-la alius_fw-la fecit_fw-la peccatum_fw-la non_fw-la haberent_fw-la joan._n 15._o â4_n &_o 5.20_o ego_fw-la habeo_fw-la testimonium_fw-la maius_fw-la joanne_n opera_fw-la enim_fw-la quae_fw-la dedit_fw-la mihi_fw-la pater_fw-la ut_fw-la faciam_fw-la ipsa_fw-la testimonium_fw-la perhibent_fw-la de_fw-la i_o scripture_n term_v they_o you_o 24._o you_o pag._n 112._o lin_v 24._o cite_v suarez_n the_o jesuit_n 3._o jesuit_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la catholica_fw-la contra_fw-la sect._n anglican_n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o §._o 3._o say_v haec_fw-la adulterari_fw-la possunt_fw-la &_o ita_fw-la exteriùs_fw-la fingi_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la sint_fw-la necessaria_fw-la signa_fw-la verae_fw-la fidei_fw-la miracle_n may_v so_o be_v adulterare_v and_o external_o falsify_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v necessary_a sign_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n thus_o you_o cite_v suarez_n but_o how_o gross_o these_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o suarez_n but_o word_n speak_v by_o way_n of_o objection_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o protestant_n for_o their_o paradox_n that_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a this_o be_v then_o your_o argument_n in_o suarez_n without_o faith_n the_o true_a church_n can_v not_o subsist_v but_o there_o be_v no_o infallible_a external_a &_o visible_a sign_n of_o true_a faith_n see_v even_o miracle_n themselves_o may_v be_v forge_v and_o counterfeit_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n can_v be_v assure_o know_v by_o visible_a mark_n suarez_n have_v urge_v this_o argument_n with_o other_o large_o he_o say_v 8._o say_v ibid._n §_o 8._o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v visible_a and_o to_o the_o argument_n about_o miracle_n credentium_fw-la miracle_n ibid._n c._n 8._o §._o 9_o non_fw-la ad_fw-la cognoscendam_fw-la singulorum_fw-la credentium_fw-la fidem_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la cognoscendam_fw-la congregationem_fw-la verè_fw-la credentium_fw-la he_o say_v that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a token_n of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o person_n that_o do_v they_o yet_o they_o be_v sufficient_a sign_n to_o prove_v that_o true_a faith_n &_o sanctify_v be_v in_o the_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v do_v so_o that_o what_o suarez_n the_o jesuit_n set_v down_o out_o of_o protestant_n as_o to_o be_v by_o he_o refell_v you_o produce_v as_o the_o assertion_n and_o doctrine_n of_o suarez_n if_o you_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v severe_o punish_v those_o that_o deceive_v soul_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o forgery_n and_o fraud_n i_o wonder_v how_o you_o do_v not_o fear_v to_o cite_v a_o cite_v pag._n 160._o lin_v ult._n &_o in_o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr a_o s._n chrysostome_n homil._n 3._o upon_o the_o act_n as_o affirm_v that_o no_o monarchical_a and_o supereminent_a action_n be_v exercise_v by_o s._n peter_n no_o vassalage_n or_o subjection_n yield_v he_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o your_o margin_n you_o cite_v these_o word_n his_o petrus_n egit_fw-la omne_fw-la ex_fw-la communi_fw-la discipulorum_fw-la sententia_fw-la nihil_fw-la ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la nihil_fw-la cum_fw-la imperio_fw-la peter_n do_v all_o thing_n by_o common_a advice_n of_o the_o disciple_n nothing_o by_o way_n of_o authority_n and_o command_n thus_o you_o cite_v s._n chrysostome_n now_o see_v your_o falsehood_n he_o say_v not_o as_o you_o cite_v he_o universal_o peter_n never_o do_v any_o thing_n by_o way_n of_o authority_n and_o command_n but_o speak_v of_o the_o election_n of_o s._n mathias_n he_o say_v that_o in_o this_o business_n he_o do_v all_o by_o common_a advice_n not_o by_o way_n of_o authority_n and_o then_o add_v present_o that_o this_o not_o use_v authority_n be_v wisdom_n and_o modesty_n not_o want_n of_o authority_n in_o peter_n behold_v his_o word_n so_o pregnant_a for_o peter_n monarchy_n as_o nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o full_o why_o do_v he_o peter_n communicate_v this_o business_n with_o they_o videretur_fw-la they_o quid_fw-la an_fw-mi non_fw-la licebat_fw-la ipse_fw-la eligere_fw-la licebat_fw-la &_o quidem_fw-la maximè_fw-la verumtamen_fw-la non_fw-la id_fw-la fecit_fw-la ne_fw-la cviquam_fw-la gratificari_fw-la videretur_fw-la what_o have_v he_o not_o power_n to_o make_v the_o election_n himself_o he_o may_v very_o have_v do_v it_o alone_o without_o any_o question_n but_o he_o do_v not_o lest_o he_o shall_v be_v think_v partial_a to_o some_o one_o have_v he_o choose_v he_o by_o this_o sole_a authority_n and_o again_o this_o be_v the_o wisdom_n and_o foresight_n of_o this_o doctor_n he_o say_v not_o we_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o teach_v and_o although_o he_o have_v right_a to_o appoint_v a_o apostle_n as_o much_o as_o they_o all_o have_v that_o be_v he_o can_v alone_o have_v do_v as_o much_o as_o together_o with_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o eminent_a power_n yet_o this_o do_v it_o with_o advice_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o man_n and_o because_o eminency_n in_o spiritual_a power_n be_v not_o a_o honour_n but_o care_n of_o subject_n yet_o worthy_o âuoâ_n worthy_o meritò_fw-la primus_fw-la omnium_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la usurpat_fw-la in_o negotio_fw-la ut_fw-la qui_fw-la omneâ_n habebat_fw-la in_o manu_fw-la ad_fw-la hunc_fw-la enim_fw-la dixit_fw-la christus_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la conversus_fw-la confirm_v fratres_n âuoâ_n do_v he_o first_o before_o they_o all_o exercise_n authority_n in_o the_o business_n who_o have_v all_o the_o rest_n at_o his_o disposition_n and_o will_n for_o this_o be_v he_o unto_o who_o our_o lord_n say_v thou_o be_v convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n thus_o s._n chrysostome_n can_v any_o thing_n âe_v devise_v more_o full_a to_o show_v that_o peter_n have_v and_o do_v exercise_v monarchical_a authority_n special_o see_v s._n chrysostome_n in_o that_o very_a place_n say_v further_a upon_o the_o word_n peter_n rise_v up_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o disciple_n say_v princeps_fw-la say_v quomodo_fw-la cognoscit_fw-la creditum_fw-la sibi_fw-la à _fw-la christo_fw-la gregem_fw-la quam_fw-la in_fw-la hoc_fw-la choro_fw-la est_fw-la princeps_fw-la behold_v how_o fervent_a be_v peter_n how_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v ând_a overuiew_n the_o flock_n commit_v to_o he_o by_o christ_n how_o do_v he_o show_v himself_o prince_n &_o primate_n âf_o this_o quire_n behold_v likewise_o the_o modesty_n of_o james_n he_o âad_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n yet_o he_o speak_v nothing_o consider_v also_o the_o singular_a modesty_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n disceptantes_fw-la apostle_n quo_fw-la pacto_fw-la concedunt_fw-la ei_fw-la solium_fw-la non_fw-la ampliùs_fw-la disceptantes_fw-la how_o they_o yield_v the_o throne_n of_o primacy_n ânto_fw-mi he_o not_o strive_v for_o it_o among_o themselves_o as_o they_o âad_v former_o do_v thus_o s._n chrysostome_n which_o thing_n âre_n so_o clear_a for_o peter_n exercise_v monarchical_a priâacy_n and_o for_o the_o apostle_n yield_v vassalage_n unto_o âim_n that_o it_o be_v manifest_v you_o can_v not_o cite_v this_o place_n âut_v against_o your_o conscience_n know_v you_o do_v but_o delude_v soul_n in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n against_o the_o âruth_n gross_a imputation_n with_o manifest_a falsehood_n impute_v unto_o card._n baronius_n §._o 5._o what_o impudence_n it_o be_v for_o you_o to_o write_v as_o you_o do_v pag._n 114._o lin_v 14._o
sentence_n hence_o sit_fw-la hence_o baron_fw-fr tom._n 4._o pag._n 306._o decreta_fw-la sancita_fw-la muâare_fw-la &_o decernere_fw-la quibuscum_fw-la à _fw-la reliqua_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la communicandum_fw-la sit_fw-la it_o may_v appear_v that_o it_o do_v depend_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n to_o establish_v decree_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o recall_v the_o establish_v and_o to_o decree_n with_o who_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o keep_v communion_n hence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o baronius_n speak_v of_o decree_n of_o faith_n declarative_n with_o who_o communion_n in_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v &_o that_o those_o be_v mutable_a as_o the_o church_n shall_v see_v cause_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n whereof_o we_o must_v know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n or_o heretic_n ocean_n heretic_n sic_fw-la verba_fw-la temperant_fw-la sic_fw-la ambigua_fw-la quaeque_fw-la concinnan_n ut_fw-la nostram_fw-la &_o adversariorum_fw-la confessionem_fw-la teneant_fw-la hieron_n epist_n ad_fw-la pammach_n &_o ocean_n as_o s._n hierome_n note_v to_o couch_v their_o error_n in_o such_o ambiguous_a word_n that_o take_v one_o way_n they_o sound_v heretical_o &_o another_o way_n they_o carry_v a_o catholic_a sense_n hence_o upon_o the_o arise_v of_o new_a heretic_n even_o the_o catholic_a father_n be_v sometime_o devise_v some_o communicate_v with_o some_o deny_v communion_n unto_o such_o dogmatizant_n the_o decision_n of_o these_o doubt_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n thereof_o in_o which_o case_n the_o church_n may_v change_v her_o decree_n for_o when_o there_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o think_v that_o such_o proposition_n be_v take_v by_o the_o author_n in_o the_o heretical_a sense_n decree_n be_v to_o be_v make_v that_o no_o communion_n be_v hold_v with_o they_o if_o afterward_o it_o appear_v by_o good_a proof_n that_o they_o mean_v the_o say_v proposition_n according_a to_o the_o catholic_a sense_n they_o may_v be_v receive_v by_o some_o latter_a decree_n and_o the_o former_a decree_n about_o avoid_v their_o communion_n may_v be_v repeal_v in_o this_o sense_n true_a be_v the_o say_n of_o s._n augustine_n 1._o augustine_n lib._n 5._o the_o baptism_n c._n 1._o that_o former_a counsel_n be_v reform_v by_o late_a when_o by_o experiment_n of_o thing_n what_o before_o be_v hide_v come_v to_o light_v in_o this_o sort_n ancient_a counsel_n 19_o counsel_n in_o concilio_fw-la ephes._n christiparae_n nomen_fw-la explosum_fw-la est_fw-la canis_fw-la de_fw-fr b._n virg._n l._n 3._o c._n 19_o make_v this_o decree_n of_o faith_n that_o none_o shall_v term_v the_o most_o bless_a virgin_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d christ_n mother_n because_o by_o that_o title_n heretic_n do_v mean_a tacit_o to_o imply_v that_o she_o be_v not_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d god_n mother_n and_o yet_o this_o decree_n of_o faith_n be_v now_o by_o custom_n repeal_v because_o it_o now_o appear_v that_o such_o as_o term_v her_o christ_n mother_n mean_v not_o thereby_o to_o deny_v that_o she_o be_v true_o and_o very_o god_n mother_n this_o be_v that_o which_o baronius_n say_v for_o speak_v of_o the_o apollinarian_o who_o do_v utter_v their_o error_n origen_n error_n ruffin_n de_fw-fr adulterate_a libror_fw-la origen_n in_o doubtful_a word_n he_o say_v that_o first_o by_o pope_n damasus_n they_o be_v reject_v as_o heretic_n and_o catholic_n be_v forbid_v to_o communicate_v with_o they_o afterward_o these_o 2._o these_o greg._n nazian_n ad_fw-la chelid_n epist_n 2._o apollinarian_o false_o give_v out_o that_o the_o council_n of_o the_o western_a church_n include_v principal_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v again_o receive_v they_o into_o communion_n upon_o the_o news_n of_o this_o report_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n thus_o write_v those_o that_o agree_v with_o apollinaris_n say_v that_o they_o be_v admit_v by_o the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n or_o roman_a bishop_n by_o who_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v once_o condemn_v yet_o acquiescemus_fw-la yet_o hoc_fw-la ostendant_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la acquiescemus_fw-la let_v they_o but_o show_v this_o and_o we_o yield_v for_o it_o be_v manifest_a sunt_fw-la manifest_a perspicwm_fw-la enim_fw-la eos_fw-la veritati_fw-la assenâiri_fw-la nec_fw-la enim_fw-la aliter_fw-la se_fw-la res_fw-la habere_fw-la potest_fw-la si_fw-la hoc_fw-la consecuti_fw-la sunt_fw-la that_o their_o doctrine_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o it_o can_v otherwise_o be_v if_o they_o have_v obtain_v this_o this_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n hence_o baronius_n do_v infer_v against_o heretic_n that_o the_o grecian_a father_n do_v bear_v such_o reverence_n unto_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o roman_a bishop_n believe_v he_o can_v not_o err_v that_o if_o his_o decree_n declarative_a of_o doubtful_a &_o ambiguous_a proposition_n shall_v change_v &_o alter_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o change_v and_o alter_v with_o he_o and_o to_o think_v that_o manner_n of_o speech_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n most_o fit_v for_o the_o present_a which_o he_o do_v for_o the_o present_a allow_v this_o i_o say_v be_v all_o that_o baronius_n do_v affirm_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v change_v his_o decree_n about_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o article_n and_o mystery_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o in_o your_o blind_a aversion_n will_v impose_v upon_o he_o catch_v at_o word_n &_o syllable_n of_o every_o less_o clear_a sentence_n which_o to_o be_v the_o right_n jog_v 26._o jog_v aguntur_fw-la spiritu_fw-la maligno_fw-la in_o pios_fw-la ut_fw-la satanicâ_fw-la virulentia_fw-la incensi_fw-la eorum_n verba_fw-la et_fw-la scripta_fw-la non_fw-fr malotio_n see_fw-la interpretari_fw-la non_fw-la possint_fw-la loc._n commun_n martini_n lutheri_n 5._o class_n pag._n 26._o of_o the_o caluinian_a spirit_n luther_n long_o ago_o note_v the_o conclusion_n behold_v good_a store_n of_o your_o ignorances_n impertinencye_n misallegation_n of_o scripture_n wilful_a &_o unconscionable_a falsehood_n in_o your_o produce_v the_o father_n which_o i_o offer_v unto_o your_o picture_n to_o adorn_v that_o crown_n which_o in_o your_o glorious_a humour_n you_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v set_v over_o your_o book_n in_o the_o second_o page_n thereof_o give_v it_o the_o title_n of_o wisdom_n and_o truth_n triumph_n very_o no_o jewel_n and_o gem_n can_v sit_v the_o crown_n of_o such_o wisdom_n and_o truth_n as_o you_o be_v better_o than_o these_o be_v make_v in_o this_o censure_n clear_a shine_v illustrious_a by_o manifest_a proof_n my_o purpose_n be_v to_o have_v discover_v many_o beside_o these_o yea_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o no_o less_o notorious_a than_o these_o about_o the_o nine_o point_n with_o many_o other_o eminent_a untruth_n but_o now_o i_o perceive_v that_o hereby_o your_o picture_n will_v grow_v though_o not_o disproportionable_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o your_o desert_n yet_o into_o a_o great_a bigness_n they_o paper-image_n use_v to_o have_v which_o common_o be_v still_o less_o than_o their_o pattern_n i_o must_v therefore_o remain_v indebt_v unto_o you_o for_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v many_o hundred_o engage_v myself_o to_o pay_v the_o last_o farthing_n of_o this_o debt_n whensoever_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v exact_v with_o sufficient_a assurance_n that_o the_o performance_n thereof_o shall_v avayle_v not_o only_o to_o your_o personal_a disgrace_n but_o also_o to_o the_o public_a good_a by_o conversion_n of_o so_o many_o by_o you_o miserable_o seduce_v soul_n although_o i_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o former_a be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o clear_a as_o they_o may_v sufficient_o resolve_v such_o as_o depend_v on_o you_o of_o their_o miserable_a and_o dreadful_a danger_n and_o move_v they_o to_o return_v to_o the_o truth_n if_o they_o err_v through_o weakness_n of_o understanding_n not_o through_o wilfulness_n of_o hart_n for_o as_o s._n cyprian_n say_v initio_fw-la say_v lib._n adver_v demetrianum_n initio_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la malum_fw-la motus_fw-la est_fw-la mendacio_fw-la fallente_fw-la multò_fw-la faciliùs_fw-la ad_fw-la bonum_fw-la movebitur_fw-la veritate_fw-la cogente_fw-la such_o as_o have_v be_v simple_o lead_v away_o unto_o evil_n by_o the_o fallacy_n of_o lie_v will_v more_o easy_o be_v bring_v back_o again_o unto_o good_a by_o the_o force_n of_o truth_n finis_fw-la the_o answer_n unto_o the_o nine_o point_n of_o controversy_n propose_v by_o our_o late_a soveraygne_n of_o famous_a memory_n unto_o m._n fisher_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n and_o the_o rejoinder_n unto_o the_o reply_n of_o d._n francis_n white_a minister_n et_fw-la faciam_fw-la vos_fw-fr fieri_fw-la piscatores_fw-la hominum_fw-la matth._n 4.19_o and_o i_o will_v make_v you_o fisher_n of_o men._n permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la m.dc.xxv_o his_o majesty_n note_v deliver_v unto_o m._n fisher._n some_z of_o the_o principal_a point_n which_o withhold_v my_o join_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n except_o she_o reform_v herself_o or_o be_v able_a to_o give_v i_o satisfaction_n be_v these_o 1._o the_o worship_n of_o image_n 2._o the_o praying_n &_o offer_v oblation_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n
reveal_v all_o these_o veritye_n to_o christ_n jesus_n and_o he_o 15._o he_o omnia_fw-la quae_fw-la audivi_fw-la à _fw-la patre_fw-la nota_fw-la feci_fw-la vobis_fw-la joan._n 15._o v._n 15._o again_o to_o his_o apostle_n partly_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o principal_o by_o the_o immediate_a teach_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o shall_v deliver_v 28.20_o deliver_v docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la math._n 28.20_o they_o unto_o mankind_n to_o be_v receive_v and_o believe_v every_o where_o over_o the_o world_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n thereof_o four_o that_o the_o 20._o the_o illi_fw-la profecti_fw-la praedicaverunt_fw-la ubique_fw-la marc._n ult._n 20._o apostle_n do_v according_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n &_o deliver_v unto_o they_o partly_o by_o write_v partly_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n the_o 6.20_o the_o o_o timothee_n depositum_fw-la custodi_fw-la 1._o tim._n 6.20_o whole_a entire_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n plant_v a_o universal_a christian_a company_n charge_v they_o to_o keep_v inviolable_o and_o to_o deliver_v 1.2_o deliver_v haec_fw-la commenda_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la hominibus_fw-la qui_fw-la possunt_fw-la alios_fw-la instruere_fw-la 2._o tim._n 1.2_o unto_o their_o posterity_n what_o they_o have_v of_o they_o the_o first_o messenger_n of_o the_o gospel_n five_o though_o the_o apostle_n be_v depart_v &_o their_o primitive_a hearer_n decease_v yet_o there_o still_o remain_v a_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n by_o which_o all_o man_n may_v assure_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o the_o primitive_a church_n receyve_v of_o they_o see_v the_o church_n even_o to_o the_o world_n end_n must_v be_v 4.5.11_o be_v ephes._n 2.20_o etc._n etc._n 4.5.11_o found_v on_o the_o apostle_n and_o believe_v nothing_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v of_o they_o these_o thing_n be_v suppose_v the_o question_n be_v what_o this_o mean_n be_v and_o how_o man_n may_v now_o adays_o so_o many_o age_n after_o their_o death_n know_v certain_o what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v original_o &_o preach_v to_o which_o question_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o last_o and_o final_a resolution_n tradition_n resolution_n note_v that_o the_o minister_n many_o time_n do_v falsify_v the_o jesuit_n tenet_n special_o pag._n 34._o saying_n that_o the_o last_o and_o final_a resolution_n be_v into_o unwritten_a tradition_n &_o not_o into_o scripture_n this_o he_o do_v not_o say_v but_o that_o the_o persuasion_n that_o our_o faith_n be_v true_a be_v final_o resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o that_o it_o be_v divine_a into_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a preach_v but_o what_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n we_o know_v only_o by_o tradition_n thereof_o be_v not_o into_o scripture_n but_o into_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v preface_n succeed_v all_o from_o this_o place_n unto_o the_o first_o argument_n the_o minister_n leave_v out_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o whole_a discourse_n yet_o he_o say_v he_o have_v set_v down_o the_o book_n verbatim_o see_v his_o preface_n the_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o principle_n set_v down_o by_o tertullian_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o golden_a by_o protestant_n commend_v book_n 1.61.21_o book_n tertull._n de_fw-fr prescript_n 1.61.21_o quid_fw-la apostoli_fw-la pââdicaverint_fw-la praescribam_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la probari_fw-la debere_fw-la quà m_fw-la per_fw-la easdem_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la quas_fw-la ipsi_fw-la condiderunt_fw-la that_o be_v i_o set_v down_o this_o principle_n what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v be_v to_o be_v prove_v no_o otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v by_o which_o prescription_n join_v with_o the_o other_o five_o supposition_n be_v raise_v the_o ladder_n for_o true_a catholic_a resolution_n about_o faith_n set_v down_o by_o the_o say_v tertullian_n on_o which_o a_o christian_a by_o degree_n mount_v unto_o god_n or_o as_o s._n augustine_n 10._o augustine_n august_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la cap._n 10._o say_v ducitur_fw-la pedetentim_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la gradibus_fw-la ad_fw-la summâ_fw-la penetralia_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o ladder_n be_v this_o &_o the_o ascend_a by_o it_o in_o this_o sort_n what_o deo_fw-la what_o tertull._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 21._o &_o 37._o nos_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n apostoli_fw-la à _fw-la christo_fw-la christus_fw-la à _fw-la deo_fw-la i_o believe_v i_o receive_v from_o the_o present_a church_n the_o present_a from_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o primitive_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n and_o christ_n from_o god_n god_n the_o prime_a verity_n from_o no_o other_o fountain_n different_a from_o his_o own_o infallible_a knowledge_n so_o that_o who_o so_o cleave_v not_o to_o the_o present_a church_n firm_o believe_v the_o tradition_n thereof_o as_o be_v come_v down_o by_o succession_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o on_o the_o low_a step_n of_o the_o ladder_n that_o lead_v unto_o god_n the_o revealer_n of_o save_v truth_n successive_a tradition_n unwritten_a be_v the_o last_o and_o final_a ground_n whereon_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o belief_n truth_n belief_n note_v the_o jesuit_n do_v not_o say_v tradition_n be_v the_o last_o ground_n on_o which_o we_o believe_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v save_v truth_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o only_o that_o it_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n so_o mount_v up_o by_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o god_n and_o by_o he_o unto_o all_o necessary_a truth_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n this_o i_o prove_v by_o these_o four_o it_o four_o these_o argument_n as_o they_o convince_v there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v but_o christian_a tradition_n so_o they_o consequent_o convince_v that_o if_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v save_v truth_n god_n must_v assist_v this_o perpetual_a catholic_a tradition_n thereof_o that_o no_o error_n creep_v into_o it_o argument_n the_o first_o argument_n if_o the_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v apostolical_a because_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v believe_v to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o voice_n of_o perpetual_a tradition_n unwritten_a then_o our_o resolution_n that_o our_o faith_n be_v apostolical_a stay_v last_o and_o final_o upon_o tradition_n unwritten_a but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n but_o by_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n unwritten_a conserve_v in_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n for_o what_o other_o proof_n can_v be_v imagine_v except_o one_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o unknown_a the_o the_o minister_n pag._n 19_o to_o title_n add_v inscription_n of_o some_o epistle_n subscription_n &_o insertion_n of_o name_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o book_n but_o neither_o be_v this_o true_a of_o all_o book_n nor_o of_o all_o epistle_n nor_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o satisfy_v a_o man_n for_o may_v not_o a_o counterfayte_n write_v a_o gospel_n for_o example_n in_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n repeat_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o book_n twenty_o time_n so_o it_o be_v childish_a to_o mention_v this_o as_o the_o last_o stay_n of_o persuasion_n for_o what_o more_o childish_a then_o to_o prove_v a_o thing_n unknown_a by_o another_o as_o much_o unknown_a title_n of_o the_o book_n which_o be_v absurd_a see_v doubt_n may_v be_v make_v whether_o those_o title_n be_v set_v on_o the_o book_n by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o of_o which_o doubt_v only_o tradition_n can_v resolve_v us._n beside_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n mark_v s._n luke_n as_o also_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o write_v by_o any_o apostle_n but_o be_v by_o their_o lively_a voice_n and_o suffrage_n recommend_v unto_o christian_n as_o sacred_a &_o divine_a otherwise_o as_o also_o approbârunt_fw-la also_o bilson_n de_fw-fr perpetua_fw-la gubernation_n ecclesiae_fw-la pag._n 85._o historiae_fw-la illae_fw-la à _fw-la marco_n &_o luca_n exaratae_fw-la canonicam_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la suffragiâs_fw-la nactae_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-la eas_fw-la lectas_fw-la approbârunt_fw-la m._n bilson_n note_v they_o shall_v never_o have_v obtain_v such_o eminent_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n neither_o shall_v they_o be_v now_o so_o esteem_v but_o upon_o the_o supposal_n of_o apostolical_a approbation_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n see_v these_o writing_n and_o recommend_v the_o same_o unto_o christian_a church_n but_o by_o tradition_n ergo_fw-la the_o last_o and_o high_a ground_n on_o which_o we_o believe_v what_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n sucecede_v they_o for_o we_o may_v distinguish_v three_o property_n of_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n
enough_o to_o know_v actual_o some_o doctrine_n which_o be_v in_o scripture_n but_o he_o must_v know_v that_o it_o be_v in_o scripture_n and_o believe_v the_o scripture_n âo_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o ignorant_a person_n can_v know_v infallible_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n true_o translate_v further_o than_o they_o find_v they_o conform_v to_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o they_o build_v their_o faith_n final_o upon_o tradition_n &_o not_o upon_o scripture_n true_o translate_v light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n shine_v in_o true_a translation_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n receive_v by_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n and_o thereupon_o so_o firm_o believe_v as_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v scripture_n to_o be_v true_o translate_v so_o far_o and_o no_o further_a than_o they_o perceyve_v they_o consonant_n with_o the_o faith_n deliver_v unto_o they_o so_o that_o their_o last_o and_o final_a resolution_n for_o substantial_a point_n be_v not_o into_o scripture_n true_o translate_v into_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n but_o into_o tradition_n by_o the_o light_n whereof_o they_o discern_v that_o the_o translation_n be_v true_a more_o or_o less_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o knowledge_n they_o have_v by_o tradition_n the_o three_o argument_n if_o all_o the_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n of_o christian_a faith_n must_v be_v know_v and_o firm_o believe_v before_o we_o can_v secure_o read_v and_o true_o understand_v the_o holy_a scripture_n than_o the_o main_n and_o substantial_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v believe_v not_o upon_o scripture_n but_o upon_o tradition_n precedent_o unto_o scripture_n this_o be_v clear_a because_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o build_v but_o upon_o scripture_n true_o understand_v neither_o can_v scripture_n before_o it_o be_v true_o understand_v of_o a_o man_n be_v to_o he_o a_o ground_n of_o assure_a persuasion_n but_o we_o can_v understand_v the_o scripture_n secure_o and_o aright_o before_o we_o know_v the_o substantial_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o all_o be_v bind_v express_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n the_o the_o minister_n here_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v tradition_n unwritten_a which_o discourse_n be_v impertinent_a and_o the_o inference_n false_a for_o himself_o grant_v pag._n 150._o lin_v 16._o that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v both_o write_v tradition_n and_o unwritten_a the_o doctrine_n then_o of_o tradition_n be_v term_v unwritten_a not_o because_o it_o be_v no_o way_n write_v but_o because_o as_o the_o answerer_n say_v it_o be_v know_v by_o preach_v precedent_o and_o independent_o of_o scripture_n summary_n comprehension_n of_o which_o point_n be_v term_v the_o rule_n 13._o rule_n tertul._n de_fw-fr praescr_n c._n 13._o of_o faith_n this_o be_v gross_a be_v the_o answerer_n here_o bring_v three_o argument_n that_o convince_v that_o none_o can_v understand_v scripture_n secure_o and_o without_o danger_n of_o damnable_a error_n that_o be_v not_o aforehand_o ground_v in_o the_o substantial_a article_n of_o faith_n the_o minister_n though_o he_o profess_v to_o have_v set_v down_o the_o answer_n verbatim_o leave_v all_o this_o out_o and_o then_o cry_v thus_o against_o the_o jesuite_n pag._n 34._o circa_fw-la finem_fw-la that_o man_n must_v be_v first_o instruct_v in_o the_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n before_o they_o can_v secured_o read_v and_o interpret_v scripture_n be_v affirm_v by_o the_o jesuite_n but_o not_o prove_v thus_o he_o what_o not_o prove_v the_o jesuit_n bring_v three_o large_a convictive_a proof_n thereof_o which_o you_o because_o you_o can_v answer_v omit_v and_o then_o cry_v the_o jesuit_n do_v say_v and_o not_o prove_v this_o deal_n be_v gross_a prove_v by_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o protestans_fw-la in_o who_o name_n 4._o name_n d._n feild_n l._n 3._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 4._o d._n feild_n write_v in_o this_o sort_n we_o hold_v with_o the_o papist_n that_o neither_o conference_n of_o place_n nor_o consideration_n of_o antecedentia_fw-la and_o consequentia_fw-la nor_o the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n and_o look_v into_o the_o original_n âs_v of_o any_o force_n unless_o we_o find_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o conceive_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o mean_v in_o the_o place_n interpret_v to_o be_v consonant_n unto_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 19_o faith_n d._n feild_n l._n 4._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 14._o &_o 19_o for_o who_o can_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n but_o he_o that_o be_v settle_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n presuppose_v in_o their_o delivery_n of_o scripture_n second_o by_o the_o experience_n both_o of_o all_o former_a age_n and_o this_o present_a prove_v by_o too_o many_o example_n that_o such_o as_o come_v to_o read_v &_o expound_v scripture_n without_o be_v aforehand_o settle_v by_o tradition_n in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n do_v fall_n into_o error_n most_o damnable_a against_o the_o main_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n as_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o the_o incarnation_n baptism_n and_o other_o so_o that_o read_v &_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n make_v not_o man_n christian_n but_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v make_v by_o tradition_n at_o the_o least_o for_o substantial_a point_n such_o as_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v express_o to_o know_v three_o we_o be_v not_o more_o able_a to_o understand_v scripture_n then_o be_v our_o forefather_n the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v there_o reason_n that_o we_o shall_v so_o think_v of_o ourselves_o but_o they_o think_v themselves_o unable_a to_o interpret_v scripture_n precise_o of_o itself_o by_o conference_n of_o place_n without_o the_o light_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n aforehand_o know_v and_o firm_o believe_v upon_o the_o church_n perpetual_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n witness_n 9_o witness_n ruffinus_n eccles._n hist._n l._n 2._o c._n 9_o s._n basill_n and_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n the_o two_o grande_fw-fr doctor_n of_o the_o grecian_a church_n and_o origen_n who_o thus_o write_v 29._o write_v orig._n tract_n in_o matth._n cap._n 29._o in_o our_o understand_v of_o scripture_n we_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o first_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n nor_o believe_v otherwise_o but_o as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v by_o succession_n deliver_v to_o us._n ergo_fw-la no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o read_v &_o interpret_v scripture_n without_o scripture_n without_o protestant_n affirm_v as_o whitaker_n contr_n 1._o q._n 4._o c._n 2._o and_o other_o that_o no_o man_n can_v understand_v scripture_n that_o bring_v not_o with_o he_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n and_o christian_a piety_n puras_fw-la &_o sanctas_fw-la mentes_fw-la which_o do_v most_o evident_o demonstrate_v that_o faith_n about_o substantial_a point_n be_v ground_v on_o god_n word_n precedent_o unto_o scripture_n that_o persuasion_n which_o be_v precedent_n unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n and_o be_v the_o rule_n guide_v we_o in_o our_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v ground_v upon_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n but_o christian_a faith_n &_o piety_n as_o they_o grant_v be_v precedent_n unto_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n yea_o must_v be_v bring_v unto_o the_o read_n thereof_o and_o direct_v we_o in_o it_o ergo_fw-la faith_n be_v not_o original_o ground_v on_o scripture_n the_o light_n &_o assistance_n of_o firm_a christian_a faith_n aforehand_o conceive_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v what_o by_o tradition_n from_o ancestor_n she_o receive_v whence_o i_o also_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v exceed_o dangerous_a boldness_n in_o man_n of_o this_o age_n so_o to_o presume_v on_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n get_v by_o diligent_a read_n and_o confer_v of_o place_n as_o they_o care_v not_o though_o a_o 344._o a_o luther_n de_fw-fr captiu_fw-la babyl_n tom._n 2._o wittenberg_n pag._n 344._o thousand_o of_o cyprian_n augustin_n church_n &_o tradition_n shall_v stand_v against_o they_o the_o four_o argument_n those_o that_o understand_v the_o scripture_n aright_o must_v be_v such_o as_o they_o be_v to_o who_o the_o apostle_n write_v and_o deliver_v the_o scripture_n and_o who_o instruction_n they_o intend_v by_o their_o writing_n but_o the_o apostle_n as_o d._n margin_n d._n lib._n 4._o of_o the_o church_n c._n 4._o in_o the_o margin_n feild_n acknowledge_v write_v to_o they_o they_o have_v former_o teach_v more_o at_o large_a that_o be_v instruct_v and_o ground_v in_o all_o substantial_a and_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n that_o know_v the_o common_a necessary_a observation_n of_o christianity_n ergo_fw-la they_o that_o read_v and_o presume_v to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n without_o first_o know_v and_o firm_o believe_v by_o tradition_n at_o the_o least_o all_o necessary_a and_o substantial_a point_n of_o faith_n church_n faith_n the_o minister_n pag._n 34._o lin_v 34._o charge_v the_o
be_v grant_v on_o both_o side_n the_o only_a question_n be_v by_o what_o rule_n these_o doctrine_n involue_v be_v unfold_v and_o make_v know_v unto_o we_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n protestant_n say_v by_o scripture_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n and_o reason_n wotton_n trial_n of_o the_o romish_a etc._n etc._n pag_n 88_o lin_v 29._o and_o by_o other_o thing_n beside_o scripture_n evident_a in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n feild_n pag_n 281._o lin_v 20._o catholic_n hold_v that_o the_o rule_n to_o expound_v scripture_n bind_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v deduction_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o logic_n but_o the_o tradition_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v prove_v first_o because_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v for_o the_o capacity_n of_o unlearned_a man_n aswell_o as_o of_o learned_a but_o man_n unlearned_a can_v be_v sure_a of_o the_o virtualitye_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n or_o logical_a deduction_n for_o they_o can_v understand_v when_o a_o argument_n be_v good_a by_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n second_o the_o scripture_n itself_o to_o supply_v her_o want_n send_v we_o not_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n but_o unto_o tradition_n say_v 2._o thessaly_n 2.15_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n you_o have_v receive_v by_o word_n or_o our_o epistle_n they_o send_v man_n to_o the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 3.15_o which_o whosoever_o do_v not_o hear_v be_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n matth._n 13.5.7_o therefore_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o church-tradition_n &_o not_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n do_v we_o learn_v authentical_o the_o confess_a virtuality_n obscurity_n and_o involution_n of_o scripture_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n three_o the_o father_n about_o matter_n involue_v in_o scripture_n send_v man_n not_o unto_o logic_n but_o unto_o tradition_n avouch_v the_o same_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n as_o certain_a &_o no_o less_o estimable_a than_o scripture_n s._n chrysostome_n homil_n 4_o in_o 2._o ad_fw-la thessaly_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o deliver_v all_o thing_n in_o scripture_n but_o some_o thing_n without_o writing_n and_o these_o be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v credit_v as_o the_o write_a it_o be_v a_o tradition_n this_o be_v enough_o seek_v no_o more_o the_o same_o be_v teach_v by_o s._n dionysius_n eccles._n hierar_n c._n 1._o iren._n l._n 2._o c._n 2.3_o &_o 4._o eusebius_n lib._n 1._o the_o demonst_a euang._n c._n 8._o by_o s._n basill_n the_o spirit_n sanct_a c._n 27._o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 55._o &_o 61._o aug._n de_fw-fr baptis_n li._n 2._o c._n 7._o &_o lib._n 5._o c._n 23._o and_o the_o rest_n final_o we_o dislike_v the_o protestant_a manner_n of_o control_v the_o church_n by_o scripture_n for_o on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o contradict_v the_o universal_a custom_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o least_o and_o as_o they_o grant_v of_o many_o age_n say_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n during_o the_o space_n of_o nine_o hundred_o year_n have_v spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o that_o a_o universal_a apostasy_n be_v over_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n perkins_n exposit._n of_o the_o creed_n pag._n 307._o &_o 400._o on_o the_o other_o side_n their_o argument_n out_o of_o scripture_n be_v at_o the_o most_o but_o probable_a and_o they_o sometime_o challenge_v no_o more_o homini_fw-la non_fw-la prorsus_fw-la alienato_fw-la probabilior_fw-la apparet_fw-la whitak_v contr_n 1._o q._n 5._o c_o 8._o circa_fw-la finem_fw-la other_o allege_v scripture_n not_o with_o as_o probable_a colour_n as_o we_o do_v john_n white_n defence_n pag._n 321._o yea_o this_o minister_n in_o his_o reply_n do_v acknowledge_v pag._n 581._o that_o by_o sophistry_n we_o give_v unto_o their_o scripturall_a argument_n seem_v and_o appear_v solution_n now_o we_o catholic_n think_v it_o to_o be_v heretical_a &_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v insolent_a madness_n upon_o probability_n upon_o argument_n from_o scripture_n that_o receive_v seem_a solution_n to_o contradict_v the_o christian_a universal_a tradition_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n for_o what_o the_o minister_n say_v this_o to_o be_v do_v by_o sophistry_n be_v ridiculous_a for_o if_o to_o give_v seem_v plausible_a and_o probable_a solution_n unto_o scripturall_a argument_n against_o the_o full_a tradition_n of_o christianity_n be_v sophistry_n what_o be_v true_a theology_n on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o for_o man_n to_o stand_v against_o the_o tradition_n of_o so_o many_o whole_a christian_a age_n upon_o argument_n they_o confess_v to_o be_v probable_o and_o seem_o answer_v be_v christianity_n what_o be_v heretical_a obstinacy_n five_o whereas_o you_o object_n that_o pag._n 199._o lin_v 6._o the_o father_n dispute_v from_o scripture_n negative_o against_o heretic_n in_o this_o sort_n doctrine_n be_v not_o clear_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o faith_n you_o must_v know_v that_o the_o father_n proceed_v upon_o a_o supposition_n that_o be_v know_v unto_o all_o and_o grant_v by_o the_o heretic_n themselves_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o doctrine_n they_o dispute_v against_o be_v not_o the_o full_a and_o public_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o see_v scripture_n as_o we_o have_v show_v do_v necessary_o suppose_v tradition_n that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o true_a text_n and_o sense_n thereof_o so_o likewise_o the_o father_n when_o they_o urge_v that_o all_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n still_o suppose_v that_o that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o the_o public_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n where_o we_o must_v also_o note_v that_o the_o father_n do_v not_o only_o require_v of_o heretic_n proof_n from_o scripture_n by_o way_n of_o deduction_n &_o logical_a inference_n for_o such_o all_o heretic_n do_v pretend_v and_o herewith_o delude_v silly_a sot_n as_o now_o protestant_n do_v but_o they_o require_v of_o heretic_n to_o show_v their_o doctrine_n in_o scripture_n ipsis_fw-la dictionibus_fw-la say_v irenaeus_n l._n 2._o c._n 36._o express_o and_o in_o term_n and_o prove_v it_o not_o by_o text_n say_v s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr unitat_fw-la eccles._n c._n 3._o which_o require_v sharpness_n of_o wit_n in_o the_o auditor_n to_o judge_v who_o do_v more_o probable_o interpret_v they_o not_o by_o place_n quae_fw-la vel_fw-la interpretem_fw-la quaerunt_fw-la which_o require_v a_o interpreter_n and_o a_o arguer_n make_v logical_a inference_n upon_o the_o text_n so_o conclude_v for_o his_o purpose_n but_o by_o place_n plain_a manifest_a clear_a which_o leave_v no_o place_n to_o contrary_a exposition_n and_o that_o no_o sophystry_n can_v wrest_v they_o to_o other_o sense_n to_o the_o end_n that_o controversye_n which_o concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n be_v define_v by_o god_n formal_a word_n and_o not_o by_o deduction_n from_o it_o according_a to_o logical_a form_n for_o say_v s._n augustine_n what_o more_o unjust_a then_o ingeniorum_fw-la contentionibus_fw-la causam_fw-la populorum_fw-la committere_fw-la hence_o the_o father_n negative_a argument_n from_o scripture_n overthrow_v protestant_n religion_n for_o thus_o i_o argue_v nothing_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o necessity_n which_o be_v not_o formal_o and_o express_o reveal_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n either_o write_v or_o unwritten_a deliver_v by_o full_a ecclesiastical_a tradition_n but_o no_o heretic_n ever_o do_v nor_o our_o protestant_n now_o do_v or_o can_v pretend_v perpetual_a public_a tradition_n unwritten_a for_o their_o doctrine_n against_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n nor_o can_v they_o prove_v their_o tenet_n ipsis_fw-la dictionibus_fw-la ex_fw-la scriptura_fw-la by_o scripture_n aver_n they_o in_o express_a term_n only_o they_o claim_v text_n which_o as_o themselves_o confess_v receive_v seem_v &_o appear_v solution_n against_o which_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v but_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o sophistry_n so_o bring_v the_o business_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v decide_v by_o contention_n of_o wit_n therefore_o their_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o unchristian_a final_o it_o be_v great_a vanity_n in_o you_o to_o think_v that_o the_o tradition_n unwritten_a mention_v by_o father_n be_v conform_v to_o your_o doctrine_n write_v as_o you_o do_v pag._n 46._o by_o tradition_n the_o father_n understand_v not_o the_o fabulous_a dream_n and_o invention_n of_o papal_o who_o like_o pharisees_n corrupt_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o their_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o affirm_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v apostolical_a which_o agree_v with_o the_o confess_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n like_o darkness_n with_o light_n thus_o you_o with_o much_o bitterness_n and_o no_o less_o falsehood_n for_o what_o gerson_n de_fw-fr signis_fw-la ruinae_fw-la eccles._n sig_n 5._o say_v of_o the_o heresye_n of_o his_o age_n to_o wit_n
be_v sufficient_a for_o every_o man_n see_v the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o every_o man_n but_o express_o of_o he_o who_o be_v homo_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v one_o already_o full_o instruct_v and_o firm_o settle_v by_o tradition_n in_o all_o the_o main_n point_v of_o christian_a faith_n and_o godly_a life_n such_o a_o one_o as_o timothy_n be_v the_o scripture_n for_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n aforetaught_a and_o ground_v in_o faith_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_a who_o will_v deny_v it_o but_o this_o prove_v at_o the_o most_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n join_v with_o tradition_n not_o of_o scripture_n alone_o or_o of_o onely-onely-one_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n book_n in_o great_a letter_n very_o earnest_o affirm_v hence_o also_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o 34.35.36_o the_o the_o minister_n to_o prove_v scripture_n be_v clear_a unto_o infidel_n that_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n heap_n many_o testimony_n of_o father_n that_o teach_v scripture_n in_o some_o matter_n to_o be_v clear_a who_o deny_v this_o they_o be_v so_o to_o the_o faithful_a not_o unto_o infidel_n not_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v unsettle_a in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n yea_o many_o place_n he_o bring_v speak_v express_o only_a of_o the_o faithful_a &_o pious_a sicut_fw-la vera_fw-la religio_fw-la docet_fw-la accedunt_fw-la as_o s._n augustine_n &_o other_o by_o he_o allege_v affirm_v and_o therefore_o be_v bring_v impertinent_o to_o prove_v the_o sufficiency_n &_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o infidel_n pag._n 34.35.36_o many_o allegation_n of_o father_n which_o protestant_n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v clear_a in_o all_o substantial_a point_n be_v impertinent_a because_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o man_n aforehand_o instruct_v in_o all_o substantial_a point_n who_o may_v by_o the_o light_n of_o tradition_n easy_o discover_v they_o in_o scripture_n as_o they_o that_o hear_v aristotle_n explicate_v himself_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n may_v understand_v his_o book_n of_o nature_n most_o difficile_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o they_o that_o never_o hear_v his_o explication_n either_o out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n or_o by_o tradition_n of_o his_o scholar_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o your_o most_o learned_a majesty_n sufficient_o demonstrate_v this_o first_o ground_n of_o catholic_a faith_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o christian_a be_v original_o and_o fundamental_o build_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o as_o write_v in_o scripture_n but_o as_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n successive_o from_o the_o primitive_a upon_o the_o authority_n whereof_o we_o believe_v that_o both_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o substantial_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n thence_o further_o ascend_v &_o infer_v they_o come_v from_o christ_n and_o so_o from_o god_n the_o prime_a veracity_n &_o author_n of_o truth_n the_o second_o ground_n that_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n always_o in_o the_o world_n to_o who_o tradition_n man_n be_v to_o cleave_v that_o this_o church_n be_v one_o universal_a apostolical_a holy_a §._o 3._o this_o principle_n be_v consequent_a upon_o the_o former_a out_o of_o which_o six_o thing_n may_v be_v cler_o prove_v first_o that_o there_o be_v always_o a_o true_a apostle_n true_a the_o minister_n still_o come_v forth_o with_o his_o distinction_n that_o by_o church_n we_o may_v understand_v a_o hierarchy_n of_o mitre_a prelate_n &_o they_o he_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o church_n teach_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o world_n second_o for_o a_o number_n of_o believer_n small_a or_o great_a teach_v and_o profess_v the_o right_n say_v in_o all_o substantial_a point_n &_o then_o he_o grant_v there_o be_v still_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n this_o distinction_n so_o much_o repeat_v special_o pag._n 57_o and_o 58._o be_v impertinent_a for_o by_o church_n we_o understand_v not_o every_o small_a number_n of_o right_a believer_n but_o a_o christian_a multitude_n of_o such_o credit_n and_o authority_n as_o upon_o her_o tradition_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a what_o scripture_n &_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n for_o this_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v that_o so_o we_o may_v know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n and_o it_o can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v now_o whether_o this_o church_n be_v mitre_a or_o not_o mitre_a go_v in_o black_a or_o in_o white_a or_o in_o scarlet_a do_v little_a import_n let_v the_o minister_n but_o show_v we_o a_o church_n that_o have_v evident_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n &_o we_o will_v say_v she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n though_o she_o have_v no_o surplice_n or_o mitre_n but_o be_v as_o precise_a as_o geneva_n itself_o but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o this_o hierarchy_n of_o mitre_a prelate_n who_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n can_v assure_v man_n which_o be_v the_o scripture_n and_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n man_n ought_v not_o to_o bear_v such_o spleen_n against_o a_o mitre_n or_o corner-cap_n or_o surplice_n as_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o to_o fly_v from_o the_o church_n that_o only_o have_v catholic_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o world_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n for_o man_n to_o know_v that_o scripture_n and_o all_o other_o substantial_a article_n come_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o so_o consequent_o from_o god_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o all_o age_n a_o church_n receive_v and_o deliver_v these_o tradition_n else_o man_n in_o some_o age_n since_o christ_n shall_v have_v be_v destitute_a of_o the_o apostle_n the_o the_o minister_n pa._n 59_o lin_v 15._o say_v a_o corrupt_a church_n may_v deliver_v uncorrupt_o some_o part_n of_o sacred_a truth_n as_o the_o scripture_n and_o creed_n by_o which_o man_n may_v be_v save_v answer_n we_o may_v conceive_v two_o way_n of_o deliver_v a_o incorrupt_a text_n the_o one_o casual_a &_o by_o chance_n and_o so_o a_o corrupt_a church_n yea_o a_o jew_n a_o infidel_n a_o child_n may_v deliver_v a_o uncorrupt_a copy_n of_o the_o bible_n the_o other_o authentic_a assure_v the_o receiver_n this_o to_o be_v the_o incorrupt_a text_n of_o the_o apostle_n scripture_n and_o bind_v he_o so_o to_o believe_v this_o authentik_a and_o irrefragable_a tradition_n can_v be_v make_v by_o a_o false_a church_n err_v in_o her_o tradition_n as_o be_v clear_a now_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o man_n not_o only_o casual_o have_v the_o true_a scripture_n but_o must_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o text_n thereof_o be_v incorrupt_a therefore_o there_o must_v be_v still_o a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n who_o tradition_n be_v authentic_a that_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n upon_o which_o man_n must_v believe_v doctrine_n to_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n because_o they_o have_v not_o mean_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o substantial_a article_n of_o christianity_n without_o assure_a faith_n whereof_o no_o man_n be_v save_v second_o this_o church_n must_v be_v always_o obstinate_a always_o the_o minister_n pag._n 61._o lin_v 15_o &_o lin_v 26._o object_n that_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v repute_v a_o impious_a sect_n by_o the_o multitude_n and_o so_o not_o be_v know_v by_o the_o notion_n of_o true_a and_o holy_a nor_o can_v her_o truth_n be_v discern_v by_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n i_o answer_v as_o there_o be_v four_o property_n of_o church-doctrin_n so_o likewise_o there_o be_v four_o notion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o be_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o the_o save_a truth_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o the_o natural_a understanding_n both_o of_o man_n and_o angel_n for_o god_n only_o &_o his_o bless_a see_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o truth_n the_o second_o be_v to_o be_v mistress_n of_o doctrine_n true_o reveal_v by_o secret_a inspiration_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n ordinary_o speak_v the_o church_n be_v invisible_a to_o almost_o all_o man_n that_o be_v or_o ever_o be_v the_o apostle_n only_o and_o the_o prophet_n except_v the_o three_o to_o be_v mistress_n of_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o their_o miraculous_a preach_v plant_v in_o the_o world_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v visible_a to_o the_o first_o and_o primitive_a world_n but_o now_o be_v not_o the_o four_o to_o be_v mistress_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n that_o be_v of_o doctrine_n deliver_v and_o receive_v by_o full_a tradition_n and_o profession_n all_o the_o adversaries_n thereof_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o
christian_a divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o notorious_a changer_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n the_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a &_o sensible_a to_o all_o man_n even_o unto_o her_o very_a enemy_n for_o not_o only_a jew_n and_o infidel_n but_o even_o heretic_n know_v in_o their_o conscience_n and_o sometime_o acknowledge_v in_o word_n that_o the_o church_n be_v true_o catholic_a so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n according_a to_o this_o notion_n of_o catholic_a be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n the_o world_n have_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n they_o that_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n which_o religion_n be_v catholic_a may_v easy_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a to_o common_a reason_n that_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n clear_a by_o common_a discourse_n that_o the_o apostle_n miraculous_a preach_v be_v of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n be_v the_o prime_a verity_n his_o doctrine_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o notion_n of_o catholic_a be_v hide_v and_o the_o light_n thereof_o lose_v there_o be_v no_o ordinary_a mean_n leave_v for_o man_n to_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v nor_o consequent_o what_o god_n by_o inspiration_n reveal_v unto_o they_o we_o must_v begin_v again_o anew_o from_o a_o second_o fountain_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n from_o god_n and_o build_v upon_o the_o new_a plant_n of_o religion_n with_o miracle_n in_o the_o world_n by_o some_o recent_a prophet_n and_o if_o this_o be_v absurd_a then_o there_o must_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n a_o church_n who_o tradition_n be_v illustrious_o catholic_a and_o consequent_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n unto_o all_o man_n that_o will_v not_o be_v obstinate_a visible_a and_o conspicuous_a for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n must_v ever_o be_v famous_a glorious_a and_o most_o notorious_o know_v in_o the_o world_n that_o a_o christian_n may_v true_o say_v with_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la cred_a c._n 17._o i_o believe_v nothing_o but_o the_o consent_n of_o nation_n and_o country_n and_o most_o celebrious_a fame_n now_o if_o the_o church_n be_v hide_v secret_a invisible_a in_o any_o age_n than_o her_o tradition_n can_v not_o be_v doctrine_n ever_o illustrious_o know_v but_o rather_o obscure_a hide_a apocryphal_a ergo_fw-la the_o church_n the_o mistress_n pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a which_o if_o need_v be_v may_v be_v further_o prove_v most_o evident_o three_o that_o this_o church_n be_v apostolical_a and_o that_o apparent_o descend_v from_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n last_o bishop_n the_o church_n that_o have_v a_o lineal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n famous_a and_o illustrious_a whereof_o not_o one_o have_v be_v opposite_a in_o religion_n to_o his_o immediate_a predecessor_n prove_v evident_o that_o this_o church_n have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o as_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o 300._o stone_n range_v in_o order_n if_o no_o two_o stone_n be_v find_v in_o that_o line_n of_o different_a colour_n then_o if_o the_o first_o be_v white_a the_o second_o be_v white_a so_o the_o rest_n unto_o the_o last_o even_o so_o if_o there_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o 300._o bishop_n all_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n if_o the_o first_o have_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o peter_n the_o second_o likewise_o have_v the_o same_o and_o so_o the_o rest_n even_o until_o the_o last_o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la confessionem_fw-la generis_fw-la humani_fw-la even_o to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o humane_a kind_n as_o s._n augustine_n l._n the_o util_a cred._n cap._n 17._o speak_v for_o how_o can_v the_o tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v eminent_o and_o notorious_o apostolical_a if_o the_o church_n deliver_v the_o same_o have_v not_o a_o it_o a_o the_o minister_n say_v p._n 67._o circa_fw-la finem_fw-la that_o this_o note_n of_o succession_n make_v nothing_o against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o their_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n be_v able_a to_o exhibit_v a_o pedigree_n or_o derivation_n both_o of_o their_o ministry_n and_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v ridiculous_a for_o if_o they_o can_v real_o exhibit_v such_o a_o pedigree_n and_o derivation_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o all_o age_n from_o christ_n to_o luther_n why_o do_v they_o still_o keep_v we_o in_o suspense_n and_o never_o exhibit_v the_o same_o which_o we_o so_o earnest_o beg_v at_o their_o hand_n let_v they_o but_o name_v the_o church_n or_o pastor_n that_o do_v commit_v unto_o luther_n the_o ministry_n of_o preach_v his_o doctrine_n against_o the_o roman_a religion_n the_o roman_a church_n make_v he_o priest_n &_o give_v he_o commission_n to_o preach_v her_o doctrine_n but_o to_o preach_v against_o her_o religion_n who_o give_v he_o order_n that_o commission_n to_o preach_v see_v he_o have_v it_o not_o from_o any_o church_n as_o be_v manifest_a he_o have_v it_o either_o from_o himself_o coin_v a_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o head_n out_o of_o scripture_n understand_v in_o his_o own_o manner_n or_o from_o satan_n with_o who_o he_o confer_v and_o unto_o who_o argument_n he_o yield_v as_o himself_o do_v witness_n tom._n 7._o wittenberg_n fol._n 228._o or_o else_o immediate_o from_o god_n and_o then_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v make_v this_o immediate_a revelation_n know_v by_o miracle_n let_v not_o minister_n therefore_o idle_o say_v we_o can_v exhibit_v a_o pedigree_n feed_v we_o with_o word_n but_o afford_v we_o present_a payment_n of_o so_o long_a a_o exact_v debt_n if_o they_o know_v the_o pedigree_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o labour_n be_v not_o great_a to_o write_v the_o name_n of_o their_o ancestor_n in_o every_o age_n that_o do_v they_o may_v rest_v for_o if_o we_o can_v demonstrate_v that_o these_o their_o pretend_a ancestor_n be_v either_o catholic_a roman_n or_o else_o opposite_a one_o to_o another_o in_o substantial_a point_n and_o this_o by_o as_o authentic_a record_n as_o they_o do_v to_o prove_v they_o hold_v some_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o victory_n shall_v be_v they_o be_v it_o possible_a they_o shall_v thus_o delude_v man_n by_o say_v we_o can_v exhibit_v and_o yet_o never_o do_v it_o manifest_a and_o conspicuous_a pedigree_n or_o derivation_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o convince_a argument_n use_v by_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n epist._n 48._o circa_fw-la medium_n how_o can_v we_o think_v that_o we_o have_v receive_v manifest_o christ_n if_o we_o have_v not_o also_o receive_v manifest_o his_o church_n it_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o philosophy_n propter_fw-la quod_fw-la unum_fw-la quodque_fw-la tale_n &_o illud_fw-la magis_fw-la but_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n his_o glory_n his_o virtue_n his_o miracle_n be_v to_o the_o world_n famous_o know_v from_o age_n to_o age_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n &_o her_o preach_n who_o in_o her_o first_o pastor_n see_v he_o with_o their_o eye_n ergo_fw-la this_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v more_o famous_a more_o illustrious_a as_o able_a to_o give_v fame_n even_o unto_o the_o being_n and_o doctrine_n and_o action_n of_o christ._n four_o this_o church_n be_v one_o that_o be_v all_o the_o pastor_n see_v pastor_n the_o minister_n pag._n 108._o lin_v 14._o allege_v the_o difference_n among_o schoolman_n particular_o betwixt_o dominican_n &_o jesuit_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o explicate_v the_o efficacy_n of_o grace_n as_o a_o argument_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n want_v unity_n of_o faith_n as_o much_o as_o protestant_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v idle_a these_o difference_n not_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o scholman_n shall_v preach_v different_a doctrine_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n condemn_v each_o other_o as_o heretic_n and_o the_o church_n this_o notwithstanding_o shall_v allow_v of_o both_o side_n as_o her_o child_n than_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n disunion_n in_o faith_n but_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o allow_v such_o dissonant_n preacher_n only_o she_o permit_v they_o to_o differ_v in_o matter_n they_o teach_v as_o great_a probability_n and_o private_a opinion_n if_o any_o preach_v their_o private_a probability_n as_o doctrine_n and_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n condemn_v other_o as_o heretic_n except_o they_o recall_v their_o censure_n the_o roman_a church_n shut_v they_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n not_o permit_v disunion_n in_o faith_n for_o such_o permittance_n will_v utter_o discredit_v the_o authority_n of_o her_o preach_n &_o show_v that_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n she_o be_v a_o church_n to_o be_v believe_v no_o further_o they_o see_v and_o preacher_n thereof_o deliver_v and_o consequent_o all_o her_o professor_n and_o child_n believe_v one_o &_o the_o same_o faith_n for_o if_o the_o preacher_n and_o pastor_n
the_o first_o place_n for_o as_o protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o particular_a examination_n of_o doctrine_n be_v tedious_a and_o long_a not_o for_o the_o capacity_n of_o all_o whereas_o the_o find_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n end_v all_o controversye_n see_v we_o may_v secure_o follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n field_n epist._n dedicat_fw-la second_o what_o more_o idle_a and_o vain_a then_o to_o appeal_v from_o scripture_n set_v down_o matter_n clear_o unto_o scripture_n teach_v thing_n obscure_o or_o not_o so_o clear_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o appeal_v from_o light_n to_o darkness_n or_o at_o the_o least_o from_o noon_n day_n to_o twilight_n but_o no_o particular_a point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v in_o holy_a scripture_n so_o manifest_o set_v down_o as_o be_v the_o church_n &_o the_o mark_n whereby_o the_o same_o may_v be_v know_v no_o matter_n about_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o copious_a and_o clear_a then_o about_o visibility_n perpetuity_n amplitude_n the_o church_n be_v to_o have_v so_o that_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v scripture_n be_v more_o clear_a about_o the_o church_n then_o even_o about_o christ._n in_o psalm_n 30._o contion_n 2._o that_o scripture_n in_o this_o point_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o by_o no_o shift_n of_o false_a interpretation_n it_o can_v be_v avoid_v the_o impudence_n of_o any_o forehead_n that_o will_v stand_v against_o this_o evidence_n be_v confound_v de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles._n c._n 5._o that_o it_o be_v prodigious_a blindness_n not_o to_o see_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n tract_n 1._o in_o 1._o epist._n joan._n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o tabernacle_n place_v in_o the_o sun_n that_o it_o can_v be_v hide_v unto_o any_o but_o such_o as_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o it_o l._n 2._o cont_n petilian_n c._n 32._o what_o vanity_n then_o be_v it_o for_o protestant_n not_o be_v able_a to_o clear_v by_o scripture_n the_o clear_a of_o all_o point_n to_o appeal_v unto_o the_o prove_v of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o more_o dark_a or_o less_o evident_a place_n three_o if_o no_o man_n can_v direct_o know_v which_o be_v the_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n than_o it_o be_v vain_a before_o they_o decide_v this_o controversy_n to_o undertake_v to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n what_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n teach_v for_o how_o can_v scripture_n make_v i_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v unless_o i_o know_v aforehand_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n i_o may_v see_v this_o or_o that_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n show_v i_o as_o the_o apostle_n but_o i_o can_v know_v that_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n except_o i_o know_v aforehand_o the_o book_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n but_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n i_o omit_v many_o other_o argument_n whereby_o this_o shift_n may_v be_v convince_v to_o be_v but_o fly_v from_o the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n about_o the_o visible_a church_n for_o as_o say_v saint_n augustine_n l._n 1._o contra_fw-la crescon_n cap._n 33._o god_n will_v have_v his_o church_n to_o be_v describe_v in_o scripture_n without_o any_o ambiguity_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n that_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o true_a church_n be_v clear_o decide_v when_o question_n about_o particular_a doctrine_n that_o be_v obscure_a arise_v we_o may_v fly_v to_o she_o and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n &_o that_o this_o visibility_n be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n whereby_o even_o the_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a may_v discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o false_a augustine_n l._n 13._o cont_n faust._n c._n 13._o must_v either_o be_v the_o roman_a or_o the_o protestant_n or_o some_o other_o opposite_a unto_o both_o protestant_n can_v say_v a_o church_n opposite_a unto_o both_o for_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v in_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o bind_v to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o that_o church_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o grecian_a a_o church_n hold_v almost_o as_o many_o if_o not_o more_o doctrine_n which_o protestant_n dislike_v they_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o i_o can_v demonstrate_v if_o need_v be_v it_o be_v also_o most_o manifest_a &_o undeniable_a that_o protestant_n be_v not_o such_o nor_o part_n of_o such_o a_o church_n since_o their_o revolt_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a see_v confess_o they_o change_v their_o doctrine_n they_o once_o hold_v forsake_v the_o body_n whereof_o they_o be_v member_n break_v off_o from_o the_o stock_n of_o that_o tree_n whereof_o they_o be_v branch_n neither_o do_v they_o depart_v from_o the_o roman_a &_o join_v themselves_o with_o any_o church_n profess_v their_o particular_a doctrine_n dissonant_n from_o it_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolical_a church_n the_o second_o argument_n this_o also_o plain_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o man_n of_o understanding_n that_o will_v cast_v on_o the_o roman_a church_n a_o unpartial_a eye_n for_o she_o be_v most_o evident_o apostolical_a have_v most_o glorious_a succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n famous_a in_o all_o point_n all_o the_o minister_n p._n 116._o lin_v 9_o say_v that_o it_o be_v inconsequent_a to_o infer_v negative_o from_o humane_a history_n &_o to_o say_v history_n be_v silent_a &_o therefore_o no_o such_o matter_n i_o answer_v hence_o one_o may_v feel_v even_o with_o his_o hand_n what_o a_o unconsequent_a and_o absurd_a religion_n they_o be_v which_o can_v stand_v without_o deny_v principle_n evident_a in_o common_a reason_n &_o receive_v by_o consent_n of_o mankind_n for_o who_o do_v not_o feel_v that_o to_o argue_v from_o humane_a history_n thus_o negative_o they_o be_v silent_a therefore_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o matter_n be_v many_o time_n convince_a and_o strong_a this_o some_o protestant_n more_o judicious_a than_o our_o minister_n acknowledge_v who_o thus_o write_v it_o be_v most_o plain_a that_o even_o negative_o a_o argument_n from_o humane_a authority_n may_v be_v strong_a as_o namely_o this_o the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n mention_v no_o more_o than_o only_o six_o king_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o edward_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o conquest_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v there_o shall_v be_v more_o it_o be_v true_a man_n be_v ignorant_a many_o thing_n may_v escape_v they_o they_o may_v be_v deceive_v they_o may_v conceal_v truth_n or_o utter_a untruth_n out_o of_o malice_n they_o may_v forget_v what_o they_o know_v howbeit_o infinite_a case_n be_v wherein_o all_o these_o impediment_n be_v so_o manifest_o exclude_v as_o there_o be_v no_o show_n or_o colour_n whereby_o any_o such_o exception_n may_v be_v take_v thus_o m._n hooker_n eccles._n policy_n pag._n 115._o &_o 116._o now_o among_o these_o case_n wherein_o the_o negative_a argument_n from_o tradition_n and_o history_n be_v strong_a the_o chief_a be_v when_o the_o matter_n be_v famous_a and_o illustrious_a and_o there_o be_v a_o line_n and_o succession_n of_o chief_a bishop_n prince_n &_o person_n notorious_o know_v even_o to_o the_o particularitye_n of_o their_o name_n action_n day_n of_o their_o reign_n and_o death_n wherefore_o it_o be_v idle_a what_o the_o minister_n pag._n 230._o bring_v against_o this_o that_o we_o know_v not_o who_o be_v the_o first_o that_o eat_v man_n flesh_n nor_o when_o the_o assyrian_a matron_n do_v first_o prostitute_v themselves_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o venus_n for_o no_o wonder_n we_o know_v not_o such_o thing_n see_v we_o have_v not_o a_o lineal_a history_n of_o these_o time_n as_o we_o have_v of_o other_o time_n special_o since_o the_o come_n of_o christ._n for_o lineal_a history_n concern_v illustrious_a matter_n be_v both_o affirmative_o &_o negative_o strong_a yea_o more_o strong_a negative_o then_o affirmative_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o be_v not_o so_o impossible_a that_o man_n with_o full_a report_n shall_v vent_v a_o untruth_n as_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v by_o full_a consent_n silent_a about_o a_o most_o illustrious_a truth_n man_n be_v in_o such_o case_n more_o prone_a to_o report_v then_o to_o conceal_v for_o example_n shall_v one_o contest_v that_o some_o of_o our_o king_n since_o the_o conquest_n set_v up_o image_n in_o all_o church_n of_o england_n the_o country_n be_v before_o that_o time_n pure_a protestant_n may_v not_o such_o a_o impudent_a writer_n be_v convince_v of_o madness_n by_o negative_a history_n and_o why_o but_o because_o there_o be_v a_o most_o notorious_a line_n of_o our_o king_n since_o the_o last_o conquest_n and_o their_o name_n action_n day_n of_o their_o reign_n and_o death_n most_o famous_o know_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n there_o be_v a_o line_n of_o pope_n so_o conspicuous_o know_v as_o nothing_o more_o from_z peter_z unto_o vrban_n they_o eight_o what_o
firm_o any_o minister_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n affirm_v a_o book_n to_o be_v scripture_n until_o we_o see_v clear_o that_o he_o deliver_v therein_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o then_o be_v evident_a unto_o we_o when_o we_o see_v he_o preach_v it_o free_o and_o open_o and_o no_o pastor_n to_o contradict_v he_o therein_o &_o may_v deceyve_v and_o if_o it_o may_v deceive_v how_o can_v they_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v see_v they_o themselves_o live_v not_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n nor_o see_v with_o their_o own_o eye_n what_o copy_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v but_o protestant_n as_o they_o pretend_v be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v the_o true_a incorrupt_a apostolical_a text_n of_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la they_o have_v it_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n now_o the_o minor_a that_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o roman_a be_v apparent_a for_o what_o other_o church_n do_v deliver_v unto_o luther_n the_o text_n of_o the_o bible_n assure_v he_o that_o they_o have_v it_o by_o tradition_n from_o ancestor_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n as_o give_v original_o by_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v according_o acknowledge_v by_o 369._o by_o whitaker_n l._n 3._o de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la p._n 369._o m._n whitaker_n &_o persuasion_n &_o m._n dove_n in_o his_o persuasion_n other_o but_o particular_o by_o word_n by_o luther_n contra_fw-la anabap._n ton_fw-fr 7._o german_n jen._n fol._n 169._o §._o 2._o a_o papistis_fw-la sumpsimus_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la sacram_fw-la scripturam_fw-la etc._n etc._n alioquin_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-la istis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la nos_fw-la sciremus_fw-la thus_o luther_n show_v that_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n not_o only_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o also_o upon_o her_o authority_n &_o word_n luther_n himself_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n who_o tradition_n do_v deliver_v infallible_o unto_o we_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o if_o the_o true_a apostolical_a text_n then_o also_o word_n also_o luther_n contra_fw-la anabap._n ton_fw-fr 7._o german_n jen._n fol._n 169._o §._o 2._o a_o papistis_fw-la sumpsimus_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la sacram_fw-la scripturam_fw-la etc._n etc._n alioquin_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-la istis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la nos_fw-la sciremus_fw-la thus_o luther_n show_v that_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n not_o only_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o also_o upon_o her_o authority_n &_o word_n the_o true_a apostolicell_n sense_n this_o i_o prove_v if_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o deliver_v the_o bare_a text_n but_o together_o with_o the_o text_n the_o true_a text_n true_a we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v deliver_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o all_o their_o scripture_n make_v a_o large_a and_o entire_a commentary_n of_o all_o difficil_n text_n as_o the_o minister_n cavil_v pa._n 121._o but_o only_a that_o together_o with_o the_o text_n they_o deliver_v the_o sense_n about_o the_o main_n and_o most_o principal_a point_n &_o this_o sense_n thus_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n with_o the_o text_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v as_o religious_o and_o reverent_o as_o the_o text_n sense_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v deliver_v perpetual_o unto_o posterity_n than_o they_o who_o by_o tradition_n rereive_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o true_a text_n must_v together_o receive_v the_o true_a sense_n but_o as_o 379._o as_o chemnit_fw-la in_o exam_n council_n trid._n part_n 1._o fol._n 74._o d._n bancroft_n in_o the_o survey_n pag._n 379._o principal_a protestant_n affirm_v no_o man_n doubt_v but_o the_o primitive_a church_n receyve_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n not_o only_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o also_o the_o right_n and_o native_a sense_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o 2._o of_o vincentius_n lyrinen_n cap_n 2._o the_o father_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n together_o with_o the_o text_n descend_v the_o line_n of_o apostolical_a interpretation_n square_v according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_a sense_n whereupon_o s_n 14._o s_n aug._n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la creden_n c._n 14._o augustine_n argue_v that_o they_o that_o deliver_v the_o text_n of_o christ_n gospel_n must_v also_o deliver_v the_o exposition_n affirm_v that_o he_o will_v soon_o refuse_v to_o believe_v christ_n then_o admit_v any_o interpretation_n contrary_a to_o they_o by_o who_o he_o be_v bring_v to_o believe_v in_o christ._n for_o they_o that_o can_v deliver_v by_o uniform_a tradition_n a_o false_a sense_n why_o may_v they_o not_o also_o deliver_v a_o false_a text_n as_o receyve_v from_o the_o apostle_n a_o argument_n convince_a and_o point_n and_o though_o the_o minister_n pag._n 123._o storm_n at_o this_o confidence_n of_o his_o adversary_n in_o term_v it_o unanswerable_a yet_o by_o deed_n he_o confirm_v the_o saying_n to_o be_v true_a in_o not_o answer_v but_o change_v the_o force_n thereof_o quite_o another_o way_n say_v it_o be_v this_o the_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v as_o easy_o corrupt_v as_o the_o sense_n ergo_fw-la all_o they_o which_o can_v deliver_v by_o uniform_a tradition_n a_o false_a sense_n may_v also_o deliver_v a_o false_a text_n in_o this_o argument_n he_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n or_o assumption_n i_o answer_v first_o as_o i_o say_v the_o argument_n be_v pervert_v and_o the_o medium_n or_o mean_n of_o proof_n change_v for_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n betwixt_o be_v as_o easy_a &_o be_v as_o possible_a see_v a_o thing_n may_v be_v as_o possible_a as_o another_o and_o yet_o not_o so_o easy_a that_o ten_o man_n shall_v conspire_v to_o deceive_v i_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a as_o that_o three_o shall_v so_o conspire_v as_o be_v evident_a yet_o it_o be_v as_o possible_a as_o the_o other_o because_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o three_o may_v so_o conspire_v that_o prove_v not_o that_o also_o ten_o may_v do_v the_o like_a in_o the_o same_o manner_n though_o we_o shall_v grant_v the_o sense_n may_v be_v more_o easy_o mistake_v by_o the_o church_n than_o the_o text_n yet_o it_o be_v as_o possible_a that_o the_o church_n be_v mistake_v in_o the_o sense_n because_o no_o reason_n prove_v that_o uniform_a tradition_n can_v be_v mistake_v in_o the_o sense_n that_o prove_v not_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v mistake_v in_o the_o text_n though_o perchance_o not_o so_o easy_o now_o if_o the_o church_n in_o her_o uniform_a tradition_n may_v be_v mistake_v about_o the_o text_n then_o be_v not_o tradition_n a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o infallible_a persuasion_n that_o the_o text_n be_v the_o apostle_n and_o so_o faith_n be_v overthrow_v which_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o incorrupt_a scripture_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o tradition_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v second_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o sense_n and_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n concern_v main_n and_o substantial_a article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v soon_o corrupt_v and_o a_o false_a sense_n persuade_v to_o the_o church_n than_o a_o false_a text_n the_o reason_n be_v manifest_a because_o million_o of_o christian_n know_v by_o tradition_n the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n about_o main_n point_n that_o know_v not_o all_o the_o text_n by_o which_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v yea_o perchance_o true_o &_o certain_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o for_o example_n the_o doctrine_n that_o there_o be_v three_o divine_a person_n and_o one_o god_n be_v so_o engrave_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o even_o simple_a christian_n as_o you_o may_v soon_o pull_v out_o their_o heart_n then_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o christian_a faith_n whence_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v the_o trinity_n but_o he_o be_v present_o note_v by_o al._n on_o the_o other_o side_n this_o text_n 1._o joan._n 5.7_o whereby_o the_o trinity_n be_v prove_v there_o be_v three_o that_o give_v testimony_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o million_o do_v not_o know_v and_o so_o it_o be_v more_o easy_a to_o take_v from_o christian_n this_o text_n than_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o and_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v of_o any_o other_o text_n the_o text_n be_v still_o common_o far_a more_o unknown_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o creed_n &_o such_o substantial_a point_n unanswerable_a the_o four_o argument_n my_o four_o proof_n i_o gronnd_v upon_o a_o principle_n most_o certain_a and_o set_v down_o by_o 75._o by_o in_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o conference_n before_o his_o majesty_n p._n 75._o your_o gracious_a majesty_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v once_o the_o mother_n church_n and_o consequent_o the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n all_o other_o church_n be_v her_o daughter_n and_o that_o she_o be_v not_o to_o be_v forsake_v further_a than_o it_o can_v
catalogue_n of_o doctor_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n say_v in_o the_o year_n 605._o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o falsehood_n prevayl_v and_o then_o be_v the_o whole_a world_n overwhelm_v in_o the_o dregs_n of_o antichristian_a filthiness_n abominable_a tradition_n and_o superstition_n of_o the_o pope_n m._n perkins_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n pag._n 307._o &_o 400._o say_v during_o the_o space_n of_o nine_o hundred_o year_n the_o popish_a heresy_n have_v spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n a_o universal_a apostasy_n overspread_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o that_o our_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o then_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n m._n fulke_o treatise_n against_o stapleton_n and_o martial_n pag._n 25._o the_o pope_n have_v blind_v the_o world_n these_o many_o hundred_o year_n some_o say_v 900._o some_o 1000_o some_o 1200._o master_n napier_n revelat._n pag._n 64._o &_o 101._o the_o antichristian_a and_o papistical_a reign_n begin_v about_o the_o year_n 316._o after_o christ_n reign_v universal_o without_o debatable_a contradiction_n god_n true_a church_n abide_v certain_o bid_v and_o latent_fw-la confess_v by_o the_o protestant's_n who_o testimony_n plentiful_a in_o this_o behalf_n if_o need_v require_v shall_v be_v bring_v first_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o protestant_n refuse_v have_v be_v universal_o receyve_v for_o many_o age_n a_o thousand_o year_n at_o least_o ever_o since_o boniface_n the_o three_o second_o that_o protestant_n can_v tell_v the_o time_n when_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o change_v and_o deviate_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n deliver_v by_o succession_n ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n never_o change_v her_o faith_n so_o that_o her_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o apostolical_a if_o the_o mayor_n of_o the_o first_o argument_n be_v true_a to_o wit_n that_o rejoinder_n that_o the_o minister_n pag._n 15._o say_v the_o jesuite_n convey_v into_o s._n augustin_n proposition_n certain_a word_n to_o wit_n doctrine_n universal_o receive_v etc._n etc._n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o s._n augustine_n for_o this_o father_n do_v never_o allow_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v any_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n not_o command_v in_o scripture_n i_o answer_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n will_v discover_v the_o minister_n what_o he_o be_v for_o these_o they_o be_v formal_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o jesuite_n l._n 5._o de_fw-la baptis_fw-la c._n 23._o many_o thing_n be_v hold_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o therefore_o be_v true_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o be_v not_o write_v thus_o he_o and_o though_o there_o be_v no_o doctrine_n which_o may_v not_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o derive_v from_o thence_o by_o consequence_n yet_o this_o logical_a deduction_n do_v not_o suffice_v to_o make_v doctrine_n to_o be_v universal_o matter_n of_o faith_n except_o they_o be_v also_o deliver_v express_o by_o tradition_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a as_o have_v be_v often_o show_v in_o this_o rejoinder_n doctrine_n universal_o receyve_v who_o beginning_n be_v not_o know_v be_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o apostolical_a and_o what_o more_o true_a this_o be_v a_o principle_n set_v down_o by_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 4._o the_o baptism_n cont_n donat._n c._n 6._o &_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 23._o allow_v by_o doctor_n whitguift_n late_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n defence_n pag._n 351._o &_o 352._o who_o in_o his_o book_n write_v by_o public_a authority_n against_o puritan_n cite_v diverse_a protestant_n as_o concur_v in_o opinion_n with_o he_o say_v whatsoever_o opinion_n be_v not_o know_v to_o have_v begin_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o same_o be_v not_o new_a or_o secundary_a but_o receyve_v their_o original_n from_o the_o apostle_n but_o because_o this_o principle_n of_o christian_a divinity_n bring_v in_o as_o m._n cartwright_n there_o allege_v speak_v all_o popery_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o man_n i_o will_v further_o demonstrate_v the_o same_o though_o of_o itself_o clear_a enough_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n or_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n be_v still_o with_o the_o church_n can_v permit_v error_n in_o faith_n so_o to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n as_o they_o grow_v irreformable_a even_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n but_o if_o error_n can_v so_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n as_o their_o beginning_n can_v not_o be_v know_v since_o the_o apostle_n and_o never_o be_v espy_v till_o they_o be_v universal_o receive_v than_o error_n can_v so_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n &_o prevail_v that_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n they_o be_v irreformable_a this_o i_o prove_v because_o error_n ãâã_d irreformable_a ãâã_d the_o minister_n say_v that_o the_o error_n of_o the_o pharisee_n be_v universal_o receive_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o yet_o reform_v by_o our_o saviour_n i_o answer_v first_o his_o desire_n to_o make_v our_o religion_n like_o the_o pharisee_n make_v he_o fashion_n unto_o the_o pharisee_n a_o religion_n of_o his_o own_o head_n as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o read_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o pharisy_n be_v certain_a practice_n of_o piety_n invent_v by_o themselves_o &_o deduct_v by_o their_o skill_n from_o scripture_n whereby_o they_o will_v seem_v singular_o religious_a &_o non_fw-la sicut_fw-la caeteri_fw-la hominum_fw-la second_o christ_n jesus_n prove_v himself_o to_o be_v true_a god_n may_v reform_v error_n universal_o receive_v &_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n fall_v erect_v a_o new_a church_n of_o christian_n as_o he_o do_v but_o this_o be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n either_o before_o or_o since_o for_o christian_a religion_n must_v continue_v until_o the_o world_n end_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o first_o tradition_n thereof_o never_o interrupt_v without_o extraordinary_a and_o prophetical_a beginning_n by_o immediate_a revelation_n &_o miracle_n and_o so_o if_o error_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o full_a consent_n of_o christian_a tradition_n they_o be_v irreformable_a irreformable_a by_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n when_o whosoever_o undertake_v ãâã_d reform_v they_o be_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n to_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n but_o he_o that_o will_v undertake_v to_o reform_v doctrine_n universal_o receive_v by_o âhe_n church_n oppose_v against_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o therefore_o be_v by_o the_o most_o receaâed_a and_o know_v principle_n of_o christianity_n and_o christ_n own_o direct_a precept_n to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o heretic_n a_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o one_o man_n may_v oppose_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o oppugn_v her_o error_n by_o scripture_n and_o not_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o heretic_n for_o not_o every_o one_o that_o oppose_v the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v account_v a_o heathen_a but_o only_o such_o as_o in_o ordinat_o and_o without_o just_a cause_n oppugn_v it_o thus_o he_o pag._n 136._o i_o answer_v by_o this_o doctrine_n every_o particular_a man_n be_v make_v examiner_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o her_o judge_n and_o hellish_a confusion_n bring_v into_o christendom_n if_o against_o the_o sentence_n of_o perpetual_a universal_a tradition_n a_o private_a man_n may_v without_o heresy_n pretend_v scripture_n &_o stand_v stiff_o therein_o and_o though_o the_o church_n give_v seem_v &_o appear_v answer_n unto_o his_o scripture_n yet_o condemn_v she_o say_v these_o answer_n be_v sophistical_a as_o our_o minister_n do_v p._n 581._o what_o can_v be_v more_o disorderly_a or_o what_o be_v heretical_a obstinacy_n if_o this_o be_v not_o wherefore_o s._n august_n epist_n 48._o say_v absolute_o it_o be_v impossible_a man_n shall_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o depart_v and_o impugn_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n add_v nos_fw-la cerâò_fw-la scimus_fw-la hereof_o we_o christian_n be_v sure_a and_o why_o but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o rule_v christian_a case_n he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n be_v a_o heretic_n heathen_a and_o publican_n matth._n 18._o vers_fw-la 17._o and_o as_o s._n augustine_n âayth_o epist._n 118._o to_o dispute_n against_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n special_o when_o the_o doctrine_n be_v ancient_a without_o any_o know_a beginning_n as_o be_v the_o suppose_a erroneous_a custom_n &_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o then_o the_o undertake_v reformer_n must_v strive_v against_o not_o only_o the_o whole_a present_a church_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n since_o the_o apostle_n et_fw-la quis_fw-la ad_fw-la haec_fw-la idoneus_fw-la who_o be_v able_a to_o begin_v a_o new_a course_n of_o christianity_n and_o to_o overthrow_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v universal_o receyve_v &_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n
as_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o know_v may_v be_v grant_v only_o it_o do_v rash_o apply_v god_n extraordinary_a favour_n to_o person_n without_o sufficient_a warrant_n the_o second_o error_n be_v that_o though_o baptism_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o infant_n yet_o in_o defect_n thereof_o there_o be_v also_o another_o ordinary_a mean_n for_o their_o salvation_n to_o wit_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o parent_n this_o error_n be_v gross_a because_o it_o presume_v without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a to_o appoint_v a_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o infant_n this_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o protestant_n but_o no_o catholic_a hold_v it_o caietan_n once_o hold_v it_o with_o submission_n unto_o the_o church_n which_o have_v raze_v it_o out_o of_o his_o book_n the_o three_o error_n be_v that_o the_o child_n of_o faithful_a parent_n be_v iustify_v by_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o their_o seed_n and_o be_v god_n adopt_v child_n before_o they_o be_v bear_v so_o that_o baptism_n do_v not_o true_o regenerate_v they_o &_o make_v they_o god_n child_n but_o be_v say_v to_o regenerate_a and_o adopt_v because_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n and_o sign_n of_o this_o grace_n of_o adoption_n which_o child_n have_v before_o baptism_n yea_o bring_v with_o they_o into_o the_o world_n this_o error_n be_v fundamental_a and_o damnable_a which_o protestant_n hold_v and_o will_v hold_v in_o despite_n of_o their_o church_n and_o yet_o dare_v she_o not_o say_v they_o be_v not_o her_o child_n caluin_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la eccles._n reform_v inter_fw-la eius_fw-la opuscula_fw-la fol._n 759._o write_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v bear_v into_o the_o world_n holy_a and_o sanctify_v because_o their_o child_n be_v yet_o in_o the_o womb_n before_o they_o draw_v breath_n be_v adopt_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o eternal_a life_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n go_v before_o baptism_n which_o grace_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o halfe-saluation_n but_o bring_v perfect_a and_o full_a salvation_n which_o be_v afterward_o sign_v by_o baptism_n thus_o caluin_n what_o the_o minister_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o say_v caluin_n to_o prove_v he_o hold_v that_o baptism_n do_v true_o sanctify_v to_o wit_n that_o child_n be_v regenerate_v by_o baptism_n be_v idle_a for_o unto_o it_o caluin_n himself_o have_v make_v answer_n l._n 4._o institut_fw-la c._n 15._o §._o 2._o when_o say_v he_o baptism_n be_v say_v to_o regenerate_a to_o renew_v to_o sanctify_v to_o save_v man_n the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o our_o purgation_n &_o salvation_n be_v make_v by_o water_n or_o that_o water_n have_v virtue_n to_o purify_v to_o regenerate_v to_o renew_v but_o only_o because_o by_o that_o sign_n we_o conceyve_v knowledge_n and_o certitude_n of_o such_o gift_n for_o what_o be_v give_v by_o the_o message_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v sign_v and_o seal_v by_o baptism_n here_o also_o i_o conclude_v that_o either_o the_o minister_n and_o his_o church_n err_v fundamental_o or_o at_o least_o they_o must_v grant_v four_o thing_n first_o that_o caluin_n and_o his_o part_n err_v fundamental_o second_o that_o culuinist_n can_v be_v save_v except_o they_o repent_v themselves_o of_o their_o religion_n three_o that_o among_o protestant_n there_o be_v dissension_n about_o fundamental_a matter_n four_o that_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o exclude_v from_o their_o communion_n such_o as_o hold_v substantial_a heresy_n necessity_n thereof_o for_o infant_n to_o who_o they_o grant_v salvation_n without_o baptism_n seaventh_o their_o error_n against_o the_o point_v the_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o protestant_n only_o deny_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o wit_n transubstantiation_n not_o the_o substance_n thereof_o because_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o real_o and_o effectual_o present_a to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n but_o present_a by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o by_o operative_a faith_n pag._n 178.179_o &_o seq_n &_o pag._n 390._o &_o 395._o i_o answer_v that_o as_o the_o answerer_n say_v this_o presence_n by_o faith_n be_v not_o real_a nor_o true_a but_o only_o pious_a imagination_n at_o the_o most_o as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o sixth_o point_v real_a presence_n which_o they_o deny_v or_o else_o the_o main_n article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o christ_n be_v still_o in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n for_o they_o will_v not_o allow_v a_o body_n in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o eight_o their_o deny_v the_o sacrament_n of_o fundamental_o of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 189._o say_v that_o protestant_n allow_v auricular_a confession_n and_o priestly_a absolution_n but_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o of_o necessity_n in_o proof_n whereof_o he_o cit_v the_o augustane_n confession_n answer_n if_o the_o minister_n approve_v the_o augustan_n confession_n he_o must_v approve_v priestly_a absolution_n to_o be_v true_o a_o sacrament_n and_o of_o necessity_n be_v command_v of_o god_n even_o as_o baptism_n be_v for_o thus_o they_o write_v cap._n de_fw-fr numero_fw-la &_o usu_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la the_o true_a sacrament_n be_v baptism_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n absolution_n which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n for_o these_o rite_n have_v the_o same_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o promise_v of_o grace_n proper_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n thus_o they_o so_o even_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o confession_n which_o they_o esteem_v as_o contain_v the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o their_o religion_n our_o minister_n and_o his_o church_n err_v fundamental_o penance_n and_o priestly_a absolution_n the_o necessary_a mean_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n commit_v after_o give_v after_o against_o this_o sacrament_n the_o minister_n dispute_v large_o but_o his_o argument_n be_v trivial_a which_o he_o take_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n conceal_v the_o solution_n which_o who_o will_n may_v there_o read_v in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n what_o he_o bring_v out_o of_o some_o catholic_a author_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o prove_v clear_o this_o sacrament_n the_o answer_n be_v that_o to_o prove_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o for_o sin_n after_o baptism_n by_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o hard_o but_o easy_a which_o you_o may_v see_v full_o perform_v by_o bellarmine_n but_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n so_o clear_o as_o some_o cavil_n may_v not_o be_v take_v at_o the_o argument_n this_o be_v difficile_a and_o no_o wonder_n see_v our_o minister_n pag._n 541._o lin_v 9_o do_v grant_v that_o even_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o religion_n can_v be_v so_o prove_v by_o scripture_n but_o seem_a solution_n may_v be_v give_v baptism_n nine_o their_o deny_v the_o catholic_a church_n express_o set_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n which_o of_o all_o other_o article_n be_v with_o heretic_n with_o other_o article_n be_v more_o necessary_a they_o this_o as_o sole_a object_n of_o necessary_a divine_a affection_n &_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v more_o dangerous_o deny_v but_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o know_v necessary_a object_n nothing_o more_o necessary_a than_o this_o true_a church_n nor_o any_o thing_n more_o evident_a &_o therefore_o the_o denial_n thereof_o be_v most_o dangerous_a in_o respect_n of_o heresy_n yea_o the_o article_n without_o resistance_n whereof_o no_o man_n can_v be_v heretic_n great_a danger_n deny_v for_o the_o stand_n out_o against_o this_o make_v man_n heretic_n &_o without_o err_v against_o this_o no_o man_n be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n whatsoever_o doctor_n field_n to_o the_o contrary_n say_v that_o a_o errant_a against_o a_o fundamental_a point_n be_v a_o heretic_n though_o he_o err_v without_o we_o without_o what_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v pertinacious_a &_o obstinate_a against_o scripture_n &_o not_o against_o the_o church_n be_v impossible_a for_o either_o he_o see_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o he_o see_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n &_o yet_o hold_v it_o he_o do_v judge_n the_o scripture_n not_o to_o be_v christ_n nor_o of_o god_n &_o consequent_o he_o be_v pertinacious_a against_o the_o church_n tradition_n which_o as_o have_v be_v say_v be_v the_o stay_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o this_o point_n if_o he_o see_v not_o his_o exposition_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n but_o be_v deceyve_v by_o conference_n of_o place_n he_o be_v not_o heretic_n until_o know_v his_o exposition_n to_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o church_n he_o persist_v therein_o for_o what_o be_v pertinacious_a wilfulness_n but_o to_o resist_v lawful_a authority_n which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v against_o we_o pertinacity_n whereof_o he_o bring_v not_o any_o syllable_n of_o proof_n &_o
yet_o his_o doctrine_n be_v against_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o divines_n &_o express_o against_o s._n augustine_n who_o say_v that_o a_o man_n hold_v with_o photinus_n who_o error_n be_v fundamental_a against_o the_o trinity_n &_o god_n head_n of_o christ_n think_v he_o hold_v catholic_a doctrine_n be_v not_o yet_o a_o wilful_a a_o the_o minister_n say_v pa._n 196._o that_o the_o jesvite_n cite_v not_o augustine_n true_o for_o he_o only_o say_v i_o will_v not_o affirm_v of_o such_o a_o person_n that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n answer_n this_o be_v untruth_n s._n austin_n say_v istum_fw-la nondum_fw-la haereticum_fw-la dico_fw-la i_o do_v affirm_v this_o man_n not_o to_o be_v yet_o a_o heretic_n though_o he_o hold_v fundamental_a error_n till_o he_o know_v he_o do_v it_o against_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o he_o add_v that_o s._n austin_n mean_v that_o ignorance_n be_v not_o heresy_n in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o be_v heresy_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la be_v ridiculous_a for_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a because_o whosoever_o deny_v though_o ignorant_o the_o know_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v a_o heretic_n in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la because_o he_o be_v presume_v to_o err_v out_o of_o contempt_n not_o out_o of_o ignorance_n but_o if_o he_o be_v true_o ignorant_a he_o be_v no_o heretic_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la because_o very_o he_o be_v not_o wilful_a heretic_n till_o warn_v that_o he_o hold_v against_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o choose_v to_o persevere_v in_o his_o error_n hence_o i_o infer_v that_o protestant_n err_v fundamental_o according_a to_o the_o second_o kind_n of_o err_a to_o wit_n in_o the_o manner_n in_o all_o point_v they_o hold_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o i_o haved_z prove_v to_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o he_o that_o hold_v any_o private_a opinion_n so_o stiff_o as_o rather_o they_o forsake_v it_o he_o deny_v &_o abandon_v the_o catholic_a church_n a_o main_n article_n of_o his_o creed_n err_v fundamental_o as_o be_v clear_a but_o protestant_n hold_v their_o private_a opinion_n so_o stiff_o as_o thereupon_o they_o have_v deny_v and_o abandon_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o roman_a neither_o do_v it_o import_v that_o they_o retain_v the_o word_n have_v reject_v the_o sense_n see_v not_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o creed_n pronounce_v but_o the_o matter_n believe_v make_v man_n christian_n neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o the_o elect_n see_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o only_a elect_n a_o mere_a fancy_n but_o the_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a church_n continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n which_o thus_o i_o prove_v the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o the_o church_n which_o to_o forsake_v be_v damnable_a for_o the_o church_n wherewith_o christ_n still_o abide_v not_o according_a to_o corporal_a &_o visible_a presence_n but_o by_o his_o spirit_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n into_o which_o he_o infuse_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n &_o consequent_o he_o that_o forsake_v this_o church_n forsake_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o head_n thereof_o and_o can_v live_v by_o his_o spirit_n but_o be_v in_o a_o dead_a and_o damnable_a state_n as_o a_o member_n cut_v off_o and_o separate_v from_o a_o live_a body_n as_o s._n augustine_n epist_n 50._o &_o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles._n c._n 16._o long_v ago_o note_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n out_o of_o this_o body_n the_o holy_a ghost_n quicken_v not_o man_n now_o the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o the_o church_n invisible_a of_o only_a the_o elect_n but_o a_o visible_a church_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o he_o that_o forsake_v the_o church_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n forsake_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o catholic_a church_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o put_v himself_o into_o a_o dead_a &_o damnable_a state_n &_o may_v have_v all_o thing_n beside_o salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n as_o father_n affirm_v who_o testimony_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v notable_a and_o famous_o know_v whereunto_o d._n field_n yield_v acknowlege_v one_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o which_o only_o the_o light_n of_o heavenly_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v where_o only_a grace_n mercy_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o hope_v of_o eternal_a happiness_n be_v find_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o nine_o point_n propose_v by_o your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n i_o have_v be_v large_a in_o my_o former_a proof_n that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a true_a catholic_a church_n who_o tradition_n come_v down_o by_o perpetual_a succession_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a apostle_n be_v so_o constant_o and_o strong_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o no_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n by_o private_a interpretation_n understand_v though_o seem_v most_o evident_a may_v stand_v to_o contest_v faith_n contest_v the_o minister_n here_o spend_v a_o whole_a leaf_n of_o paper_n in_o bitterness_n &_o gall_n against_o we_o as_o if_o we_o do_v profess_v to_o prefer_v old_a custom_n before_o know_a verity_n it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o thus_o the_o case_n stand_v between_o protestant_n and_o us._n first_o as_o for_o verity_n neither_o they_o nor_o we_o know_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v verity_n by_o manifest_a sight_n nor_o by_o the_o light_n lustre_n &_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n or_o doctrine_n as_o both_o of_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v if_o we_o be_v sober_a second_o there_o be_v record_n which_o by_o tradition_n we_o know_v to_o have_v be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o upon_o good_a warrant_n be_v believe_v to_o deliver_v nothing_o but_o god_n holy_a word_n three_o when_o controversy_n arise_v about_o this_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o there_o be_v different_a opinion_n about_o the_o sense_n thereof_o &_o seem_a argument_n be_v bring_v on_o both_o side_n we_o think_v that_o side_n ought_v to_o prevail_v as_o the_o true_o christian_a for_o which_o perpetual_a christian_a tradition_n &_o custom_n stand_v fourtly_n we_o judge_v that_o that_o side_n ought_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o not_o true_o christian_a where_o christian_a tradition_n be_v so_o notorios_o defective_a as_o they_o can_v ascend_v from_o this_o age_n upward_o towards_o christ_n by_o name_v professor_n of_o their_o religion_n high_a than_o one_o hundred_o year_n or_o if_o they_o presume_v to_o pass_v further_o they_o be_v present_o convince_v to_o feign_v as_o it_o happen_v unto_o protestant_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o catholic_a proceed_v about_o their_o resolution_n of_o faith_n against_o they_o and_o this_o i_o have_v not_o do_v without_o purpose_n assure_v myself_o that_o if_o your_o majesty_n be_v thorough_o persuade_v in_o this_o point_n you_o will_v without_o any_o man_n help_n most_o easy_o and_o full_o satisfy_v yourself_o in_o particular_a controversye_n out_o of_o your_o own_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n for_o as_o some_o that_o have_v be_v present_a at_o your_o majesty_n discourse_n casual_o incident_a about_o religion_n report_n few_o of_o our_o divines_n though_o train_v up_o continual_o in_o academy_n and_o exercise_n of_o theology_n be_v able_a to_o say_v more_o them_z your_o majesty_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_a cause_n for_o particular_a controversye_n when_o you_o please_v to_o undertake_v the_o patronage_n thereof_o which_o i_o can_v easy_o believe_v out_o of_o my_o own_o experience_n who_o can_v not_o but_o admire_v see_v your_o majesty_n so_o well_o acquaint_v with_o our_o doctrine_n and_o so_o ready_a and_o prompt_a in_o scholastical_a subtlety_n wherefore_o most_o humble_o i_o beseech_v your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o honour_v these_o my_o poor_a labour_n with_o a_o gracious_a perusal_n of_o they_o accept_v of_o my_o answer_n when_o they_o may_v seem_v reasonable_a be_v in_o defence_n of_o doctrine_n receive_v from_o ancestor_n which_o deserve_v approbation_n when_o there_o be_v no_o evidency_n against_o they_o and_o of_o your_o abundant_a clemency_n pardon_v my_o prolixity_n see_v the_o question_n by_o your_o majesty_n propose_v be_v so_o difficile_a and_o obscure_a as_o i_o can_v hardly_o have_v make_v any_o short_a full_a explication_n of_o they_o the_o first_o point_n the_o air_n the_o the_o minister_n in_o this_o question_n know_v not_o well_o what_o to_o stand_v unto_o he_o grant_n the_o question_n and_o then_o he_o deny_v it_o again_o contradict_v himself_o yea_o censure_a his_o own_o whole_a
bishop_n turn_a christian_a religion_n into_o open_a idolatry_n can_v not_o have_v be_v without_o famous_a noâe_n thereof_o according_a to_o time_n and_o person_n deliver_v unto_o posterity_n by_o report_n write_v and_o unwritten_a this_o suppose_v his_o discourse_n be_v consequent_a and_o convince_a for_o thus_o the_o argue_v have_v adoration_n of_o the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n since_o the_o apostle_n against_o the_o religion_n plant_v by_o they_o the_o beginning_n thereof_o will_v have_v be_v famous_o know_v by_o historical_a tradition_n write_v or_o unwritten_a but_o the_o time_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o pretend_a idolatrize_v be_v not_o note_v by_o fame_n nor_o by_o any_o full_a tradition_n deliver_v unto_o us._n this_o be_v prove_v because_o protestant_n that_o go_v about_o to_o set_v down_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o entrance_n of_o this_o worship_n into_o the_o church_n by_o degree_n since_o the_o apostle_n vary_v among_o themselves_o and_o their_o best_a narration_n be_v convince_v of_o manifest_a falsehood_n whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a they_o faygne_v that_o the_o best_a of_o their_o disagree_a relation_n be_v thus_o false_a the_o answerer_n show_v because_o the_o best_a and_o most_o esteem_a relation_n may_v seem_v that_o of_o m._n john_n white_a which_o have_v be_v so_o often_o print_v and_o reprint_v and_o wherewith_o so_o many_o be_v delude_v or_o if_o this_o not_o the_o best_a let_v our_o minister_n show_v a_o better_a which_o he_o have_v neither_o do_v nor_o endeavour_v to_o do_v but_o john_n whites_n relation_n be_v patch_v together_o of_o most_o intolerable_a gross_a falsehood_n in_o every_o point_n wherein_o he_o pretend_v beginning_n and_o beginner_n this_o the_o answerer_n show_v unanswerable_o assignable_a but_o because_o it_o be_v long_o to_o set_v down_o all_o their_o disagree_a assertion_n i_o will_v only_o declare_v what_o m._n john_n white_a brother_n to_o my_o adversary_n in_o his_o book_n print_v and_o reprint_v many_o time_n say_v thereabout_o that_o your_o majesty_n may_v by_o this_o example_n understand_v with_o how_o little_a sincerity_n the_o best_a esteem_v protestant_a minister_n handle_v controversye_n to_o the_o deception_n of_o many_o christian_a soul_n his_o word_n be_v these_o first_o 13._o first_o john_n white_a in_o his_o way_n p._n 152._o §._o 35._o n._n 13._o there_o be_v no_o image_n grave_v or_o paint_a say_v cathechism_n say_v in_o cathechism_n erasmus_n no_v not_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n himself_o to_o be_v set_v in_o church_n &_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o 36._o the_o epiphan_n ep_v ad_fw-la joan._n council_n eliber_n c._n 36._o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_n second_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v use_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n 9_o rome_n greg._n ep._n 3._o l._n 7._o indict_v 2._o &_o li._n 4._o ep_n 9_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o they_o as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n to_o serenus_n &_o polidore_n 13._o polidore_n de_fw-fr inven_n l._n 6._o c._n 13._o a_o papist_n confess_v all_o father_n condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n afterward_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 7._o nice_a act._n 7._o bring_v in_o this_o worship_n decree_a nevertheless_o that_o no_o image_n shall_v be_v adore_v with_o latria_n divine_a honour_n at_o the_o last_o thomas_n aquinas_n 4_o aquinas_n 3._o p._n q._n 25._o act_n 3._o &_o 4_o and_o the_o trent_n council_n 25._o council_n sess._n 25._o expound_v by_o the_o jesuit_n 4._o jesuit_n vasquez_n de_fw-fr adorat_fw-la l_o 2_o c._n 4._o suarez_n tom_n 2._o disp_n 54._o sect_n 4._o teach_v that_o divine_a honour_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o they_o thus_o he_o which_o in_o my_o judgement_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v any_o judicious_a man_n mislike_v protestant_a writer_n that_o defend_v their_o religion_n by_o such_o palpable_a untruth_n for_o to_o begin_v with_o his_o last_o say_n and_o so_o upward_o what_o can_v be_v more_o false_a then_o that_o the_o paragraffe_v the_o two_o thing_n you_o here_o devise_v for_o defence_n of_o your_o brother_n first_o you_o say_v pag._n 241._o lin_v 25._o that_o the_o determination_n in_o the_o council_n in_o this_o and_o in_o many_o other_o article_n be_v like_o apollo_n his_o riddle_n so_o ambiguous_a as_o no_o wonder_n your_o brother_n be_v deceive_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n allow_v only_o bow_v before_o image_n with_o inward_a reference_n of_o the_o adore_a affection_n unto_o christ_n as_o any_o man_n that_o shall_v peruse_v the_o decree_n will_v present_o perceive_v second_o though_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o council_n be_v dark_a &_o obscure_a yet_o whether_o the_o council_n give_v a_o command_n in_o this_o form_n of_o word_n some_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la can_v be_v obscure_a nor_o can_v any_o mistake_n theirin_fw-mi but_o only_a misrelate_n against_o his_o knowledge_n through_o desire_n to_o deceive_v now_o your_o brother_n charge_v the_o council_n with_o give_v a_o command_n in_o this_o very_a form_n of_o word_n in_o his_o way_n of_o digression_n from_o the_o church_n digress_v 49._o numero_fw-la 5_o pag._n 345._o lin_v 10._o the_o church_n of_o rom_n say_v he_o command_v that_o sâme_a image_n be_v worship_v with_o divine_a honour_n the_o very_a same_o that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n himself_o the_o word_n with_o divine_a honour_n be_v set_v in_o a_o distinct_a letter_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v cite_v as_o command_v in_o this_o form_n of_o speech_n in_o the_o 25._o session_n thereof_o where_o no_o such_o word_n be_v find_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o council_n be_v not_o this_o inexcusable_a lie_v second_o for_o his_o excuse_n ibidem_fw-la lin_v 33._o you_o say_v that_o which_o induce_v my_o brother_n to_o charge_v the_o trent_n master_n with_o define_v divine_a worship_n of_o image_n be_v their_o silence_n in_o condemninge_v the_o teacher_n of_o such_o divine_a worship_n but_o especial_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o late_a pontifician_n that_o since_o the_o council_n teach_v divine_a worship_n of_o image_n answer_n first_o though_o late_a divines_n do_v teach_v divine_a worship_n to_o be_v give_v to_o some_o image_n yet_o this_o will_v not_o excuse_v your_o brother_n from_o be_v guilty_a of_o belie_v the_o council_n for_o your_o brother_n do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o some_o pontifician_n so_o hold_v but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n define_v &_o command_v divine_a worship_n of_o image_n cite_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess._n 25._o so_o define_v in_o as_o many_o word_n be_v not_o this_o kind_n of_o lie_v damnable_a as_o be_v gross_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n &_o salvation_n second_o you_o either_o ignorant_o mistake_v or_o wilful_o pervert_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o divines_n as_o the_o answerer_n do_v show_v in_o the_o next_o paragraffe_v council_n of_o trent_n teach_v that_o divine_a worship_n be_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o image_n there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n in_o the_o whole_a council_n as_o for_o the_o jesuit_n vasquez_n who_o he_o cit_v as_o so_o expound_v the_o council_n no_o such_o doctrine_n be_v find_v in_o he_o either_o in_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o the_o minister_n or_o in_o any_o part_n of_o his_o work_n yea_o the_o contrary_n be_v find_v l._n 2._o de_fw-la adorat_fw-la disp_n 9_o c._n 3._o it_o be_v not_o quoth_v he_o to_o be_v say_v that_o divine_a honour_n be_v give_v unto_o image_n neither_o do_v suarez_n the_o other_o jesuit_n cite_v expound_v the_o council_n to_o give_v divine_a worship_n unto_o christ_n image_n but_o only_o say_v that_o out_o of_o the_o council_n it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o christ_n be_v honour_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o act_n of_o worship_n which_o as_o refer_v unto_o christ_n be_v divine_a worship_n as_o refer_v unto_o the_o image_n not_o divine_a worship_n but_o inferior_a veneration_n for_o as_o he_o declare_v in_o 3._o part_n to._n 1._o disp_n 54._o sect._n 3._o ad_fw-la 7._o ille_fw-la actus_fw-la respectu_fw-la prototypi_fw-la est_fw-la propriè_fw-la latria_n etc._n etc._n respectu_fw-la viz._n imaginis_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la tam_fw-la perfecta_fw-la adoratio_fw-la sed_fw-la inferior_a veneratio_fw-la the_o worship_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o image_n though_o one_o and_o the_o same_o physical_a act_n be_v virtual_o two_o fold_n be_v divine_a honour_n towards_o christ_n not_o divine_a but_o a_o kind_n of_o inferior_a honour_n towards_o the_o image_n nor_o be_v m._n whites_n way_n pag._n 400_o argument_n good_a we_o worship_v christ_n and_o his_o image_n by_o the_o same_o act_n but_o the_o worship_n of_o christ_n be_v divine_a honour_n ergo_fw-la the_o worship_n of_o the_o image_n be_v divine_a honour_n for_o this_o prove_v only_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o image_n and_o of_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o act_n be_v divine_a as_o refer_v to_o christ_n not_o
old_a father_n meaning_n the_o father_n oâ_n the_o old_a testament_n not_o of_o the_o new_a whiââ_n appear_v because_o in_o proof_n of_o his_o say_n ãâã_d bring_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o say_v of_o the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 250._o lin_v 11._o that_o polidore_n name_v gregory_n among_o the_o old_a father_n that_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n as_o hierome_n do_v witness_n answer_n this_o be_v false_a and_o impossible_a for_o gregory_n live_v all_o most_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n hierome_n how_o can_v he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o old_a father_n who_o s._n hierome_n witness_v to_o have_v condemn_v image-worship_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n gregory_n they_o be_v name_v by_o polidore_n not_o among_o the_o old_a father_n but_o as_o one_o of_o the_o new_a father_n that_o be_v father_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o seem_v to_o speak_v against_o image-worship_n but_o in_o truth_n do_v not_o as_o have_v be_v say_v any_o father_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o only_o of_o the_o old_a as_o of_o moses_n david_n hieremy_n and_o other_o prophet_n and_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a chapter_n be_v to_o declare_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o father_n mislike_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n of_o god_n be_v because_o they_o can_v not_o paint_v he_o aright_o cùm_fw-la deum_fw-la nemo_fw-la vidisset_fw-la unquam_fw-la because_o than_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n adore_v god_n the_o minister_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n at_o least_o may_v have_v adore_v the_o image_n of_o prophet_n if_o such_o adoration_n have_v be_v lawful_a as_o the_o papist_n hold_v answer_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n i_o argue_v the_o jew_n may_v have_v make_v the_o image_n of_o their_o holy_a prophet_n if_o the_o make_n of_o they_o have_v be_v lawful_a as_o protestant_n hold_v let_v the_o minister_n prove_v by_o god_n word_n they_o make_v they_o &_o i_o will_v prove_v they_o worship_v they_o let_v he_o i_o say_v show_v that_o image_n of_o prophet_n be_v set_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o prophecy_n as_o he_o be_v set_v in_o the_o frontispiece_n of_o this_o his_o reply_n and_o i_o promise_v he_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o be_v honour_v this_o be_v the_o thing_n whereof_o we_o require_v example_n in_o scripture_n and_o wherein_o the_o minister_n be_v as_o dumb_a as_o a_o fish_n not_o able_a to_o show_v one_o proper_a image_n of_o a_o adore_a person_n lawful_o make_v that_o may_v not_o lawful_o be_v adore_v afterward_o god_n say_v polidore_n have_v take_v flesh_n and_o be_v become_v visible_a to_o mortal_a eye_n man_n flock_v to_o he_o and_o do_v without_o doubt_n behold_v and_o reverence_v his_o face_n shine_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o divine_a light_n and_o even_o then_o they_o begin_v to_o paint_v or_o carve_v his_o image_n already_o imprint_v in_o their_o mind_n and_o these_o image_n they_o receive_v with_o great_a worship_n and_o veneration_n as_o be_v reason_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o original_n as_o basill_n write_v which_o custom_n of_o adore_a image_n the_o father_n be_v so_o far_o from_o reprove_v as_o they_o do_v not_o only_o admit_v thereof_o but_o also_o decree_v and_o command_v the_o same_o by_o general_n counsel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o four_o and_o justinian_n the_o second_o his_o son_n and_o therefore_o what_o man_n be_v there_o so_o dissolute_a &_o audacious_a as_o can_v dream_v of_o the_o contrary_a and_o doubt_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o worship_n establish_v so_o long_o ago_o by_o decree_n of_o most_o holy_a father_n thus_o write_v polidore_n and_o much_o more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o very_a place_n where_o the_o minister_n cit_v he_o to_o the_o contrary_a which_o show_v how_o notorious_o his_o credulous_a reader_n be_v abuse_v in_o matter_n of_o most_o moment_n hence_o appear_v the_o three_o falsehood_n that_o in_o gregorye_n day_n image_n begin_v to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o church_n which_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n long_o before_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n basill_n paulinus_n lactantius_n and_o tertullian_n do_v sufficient_o witness_v neither_o can_v our_o adversary_n bring_v any_o clear_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n against_o this_o custom_n for_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n truth_n council_n the_o minister_n say_v that_o some_o pontifician_n grant_v that_o this_o council_n forbid_v the_o make_n of_o image_n so_o clear_o be_v their_o decree_n against_o they_o i_o answer_v such_o author_n have_v no_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v so_o persuade_v of_o this_o council_n but_o only_o the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n now_o the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n be_v not_o clear_a yea_o they_o can_v admit_v that_o sense_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o follow_v as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v demonstrate_v in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o minister_n to_o frame_v a_o argument_n out_o of_o this_o decree_n be_v force_v ridiculous_o to_o curtail_v the_o text_n &_o take_v some_o few_o word_n leave_v the_o rest_n such_o be_v his_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n of_o eliberis_n that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v or_o adore_v be_v paint_v on_o wall_n which_o the_o minister_n weigh_v pag._n 345._o much_o urge_v clear_o signifi_v the_o contrary_a for_o may_v not_o image_n paint_v on_o table_n be_v in_o church_n and_o yet_o neither_o make_v in_o the_o church_n nor_o paint_v on_o wall_n which_o kind_n of_o image_n the_o council_n do_v not_o forbid_v and_o why_o do_v the_o council_n forbid_v image_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n as_o pertinent_a to_o the_o fabric_n thereof_o or_o to_o be_v paint_v on_o wall_n but_o out_o of_o reverence_n unto_o image_n for_o they_o be_v holy_a thing_n and_o so_o to_o be_v honour_v for_o their_o prototype_n sake_n the_o council_n think_v it_o unworthy_a of_o their_o dignity_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v on_o wall_n where_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v deface_v and_o deform_v and_o by_o persecutor_n for_o that_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n abuse_v he_o do_v also_o way_n pag._n 345._o much_o insist_v upon_o epiphanius_n epist_n ad_fw-la joan._n hicrosol_n but_o relate_v according_a to_o his_o fashion_n both_o his_o fact_n &_o word_n unsincere_o epiphanius_n say_v he_o find_v a_o image_n paint_v on_o a_o cloth_n hang_v in_o a_o church_n rend_v it_o down_o and_o say_v it_o be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o any_o image_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n thus_o he_o unsincere_o as_o i_o say_v not_o expressinge_v what_o kind_n of_o image_n that_o be_v that_o epiphanius_n rend_v in_o piece_n for_o epiphanius_n say_v cùm_fw-la invenissem_fw-la imaginem_fw-la hominis_fw-la pendentem_fw-la in_o eâcl_n sit_fw-la tanquam_fw-la christi_fw-la aut_fw-la alicuius_fw-la sancti_fw-la nâscio_fw-la enim_fw-la cvius_fw-la erat_fw-la when_o i_o have_v find_v a_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o christ_n or_o some_o saint_n for_o i_o know_v not_o of_o who_o the_o image_n be_v epiphanius_n mutaret_fw-la epiphanius_n here_o the_o minister_n rayl_v most_o intolerable_o cry_v that_o the_o testimony_n be_v clear_a but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o endeavour_n to_o answer_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n that_o be_v demonstrative_a as_o much_o as_o any_o can_v be_v in_o this_o kind_n of_o matter_n the_o minister_n argument_n on_o the_o other_o side_n have_v no_o force_n at_o all_o be_v two_o propose_v in_o a_o double_a interrogation_n if_o say_v he_o pag._n 254._o lin_v 2._o epiphanius_n himself_o do_v not_o remember_v who_o image_n it_o be_v whether_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o a_o saint_n or_o of_o some_o profane_a man_n how_o know_v this_o jesuite_n that_o it_o be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o profane_a person_n i_o answer_v that_o epiphanius_n do_v know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n image_n nor_o any_o saint_n but_o some_o profane_v person_n though_o he_o know_v not_o determinate_o what_o profane_a person_n the_o same_o be_v for_o epiphanius_n will_v not_o have_v urge_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o hang_v that_o image_n in_o the_o church_n in_o regard_n it_o be_v a_o man_n image_n have_v he_o not_o understand_v a_o profane_a man_n hence_o his_o second_o interrogation_n be_v answer_v why_o be_v epiphanius_n silent_a and_o do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v some_o profane_a man_n answer_n epiphanius_n be_v not_o silent_a that_o the_o image_n he_o tear_v in_o piece_n be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o profane_a man_n see_v he_o term_v it_o the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o christ_n or_o some_o saint_n and_o this_o the_o complayner_n know_v well_o enough_o for_o if_o this_o picture_n have_v be_v christ_n or_o some_o
saint_n use_v by_o way_n of_o devout_a remembrance_n they_o will_v have_v accuse_v epiphanius_n of_o impiety_n towards_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n and_o not_o only_o of_o injustice_n in_o rent_v in_o piece_n the_o cloth_n without_o pay_v the_o price_n thereof_o say_v si_fw-la scindere_fw-la voluerat_fw-la iustum_fw-la erat_fw-la ut_fw-la aliud_fw-la daret_fw-la velum_fw-la &_o mutaret_fw-la do_v by_o this_o relation_n more_o than_o insinuate_v that_o this_o be_v the_o image_n of_o some_o profane_a man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o sacred_a image_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o some_o saint_n which_o be_v gather_v by_o his_o reason_n when_o i_o see_v say_v he_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n not_o absolute_o any_o image_n as_o m._n white_n cit_v he_o for_o even_o by_o god_n express_v command_v image_n be_v place_v in_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n why_o do_v epiphanius_n so_o much_o urge_v the_o impiety_n of_o the_o fact_n in_o regard_n that_o it_o be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n but_o that_o he_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n man_n a_o mere_a ordinary_a profane_a man_n not_o a_o bless_a saint_n for_o certain_o it_o may_v seem_v more_o against_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v and_o set_v up_o in_o church_n the_o image_n of_o god_n than_o the_o image_n of_o holy_a man_n &_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o godhead_n they_o as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o therewith_o why_o the_o minister_n here_o set_v down_o other_o answer_v give_v by_o catholic_n unto_o this_o place_n of_o epiphanius_n some_o of_o which_o he_o will_v have_v think_v better_o than_o this_o of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o that_o the_o jesuit_n be_v slight_v by_o bellarmine_n which_o discourse_n be_v to_o little_a purpose_n this_o be_v certain_a that_o if_o other_o solution_n he_o better_o than_o this_o yet_o this_o be_v so_o good_a as_o the_o minister_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v a_o wise_a word_n against_o it_o as_o be_v more_o large_o show_v in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 1_o §._o 1._o and_o whereas_o some_o author_n think_v that_o epiphanius_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o anthropomorphilae_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o great_a enemy_n do_v reprove_v this_o image_n of_o the_o anablathan_n as_o be_v of_o god_n in_o the_o form_n of_o man_n although_o this_o conceit_n do_v not_o help_v the_o minister_n fancy_n nor_o make_v against_o we_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o so_o conform_v to_o the_o text_n as_o be_v the_o jesuit_n which_o any_o man_n may_v perceive_v that_o will_v peruse_v attentive_o the_o text_n of_o epiphanius_n and_o compare_v these_o two_o solution_n therewith_o epiphanius_n shall_v put_v so_o much_o emphasis_n in_o the_o word_n man_n have_v he_o not_o understand_v a_o profane_a man_n for_o some_o christian_n in_o those_o day_n be_v new_o convert_v from_o paganism_n and_o so_o retain_v some_o relic_n thereof_o do_v out_o of_o their_o affection_n to_o their_o decease_a friend_n and_o parent_n use_v to_o paint_v their_o image_n and_o offer_v unto_o they_o oblation_n of_o frankincense_n &_o other_o the_o like_o heathenish_a honour_n especial_o in_o their_o anniversaryes_n day_n upon_o their_o sepulchre_n these_o man_n s._n augustine_n de_fw-la mor._n eccl._n c._n 36._o reprehend_v and_o not_o the_o worshipper_n of_o saint_n image_n under_o the_o title_n of_o sepulchrorum_fw-la &_o picturarum_fw-la adoratores_fw-la who_o to_o the_o ghost_n of_o their_o parent_n defunct_a do_v though_o christian_n offer_v that_o heathenish_a worship_n which_o the_o poet_n exhort_v unto_o non_fw-la pigeat_fw-la tumulis_fw-la animas_fw-la excire_fw-la paternas_fw-la paucaque_fw-la in_o extructos_fw-la mittere_fw-la thura_fw-la rogos_fw-la parua_fw-la petunt_fw-la manes_fw-la wherefore_o see_v this_o minister_n so_o much_o esteem_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n change_n bring_v nothing_o but_o manifest_a falsehood_n so_o many_o in_o so_o few_o line_n any_o indifferent_a man_n may_v conclude_v that_o worship_n of_o image_n have_v continue_v without_o change_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o any_o change_n in_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o this_o have_v be_v make_v it_o will_v have_v be_v most_o evident_a when_o and_o by_o who_o so_o great_a a_o novelty_n be_v introduce_v the_o place_n of_o exodus_fw-la &_o deut._n with_o no_o probability_n urge_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n by_o protestant_n that_o make_v they_o §._o 3._o against_o image-worshippe_n protestant_n bring_v the_o place_n of_o exodus_fw-la chap._n 20._o v._n 4._o and_o 5._o and_o of_o deuteronomy_n chap._n 5._o v._n 6._o and_o the_o 7._o thou_o shall_v not_o have_v false_a god_n before_o i_o thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o a_o grave_a image_n or_o any_o likeness_n either_o in_o heaven_n above_o or_o on_o earth_n below_o or_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v under_o water_n or_o under_o ground_n thou_o shall_v not_o adore_v nor_o worship_v they_o which_o place_n i_o wonder_v they_o can_v think_v strong_a enough_o to_o overthrow_v a_o custom_n in_o which_o the_o rule_n of_o nature_n the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o god_n church_n do_v settle_v christian_n for_o this_o place_n make_v against_o show_n against_o note_v that_o the_o question_n between_o we_o and_o protestant_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o image_n of_o a_o adore_a person_n may_v lawful_o be_v make_v for_o this_o they_o grant_v but_o whether_o the_o image_n of_o a_o adore_a person_n lawful_o make_v may_v be_v adore_v we_o affirm_v and_o they_o deny_v but_o for_o their_o denial_n have_v not_o one_o syllable_n of_o scripture_n the_o minister_n pag._n 259._o lin_v 3._o bring_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o golden_a cherubim_n that_o be_v make_v yet_o can_v not_o be_v adore_v but_o these_o example_n be_v impertinent_a as_o have_v be_v show_v because_o they_o be_v not_o proper_a image_n of_o adore_a person_n whereof_o we_o speak_v though_o s._n hierome_n epistola_fw-la 70._o also_o say_v that_o the_o golden_a cherubim_n be_v adore_v the_o iconomachi_n the_o turk_n and_o jew_n who_o think_v that_o to_o make_v any_o image_n of_o a_o adore_a person_n be_v unlawful_a &_o consequent_o forbid_v adoration_n have_v for_o they_o a_o little_a show_n of_o scripture_n which_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o make_v any_o image_n nor_o adore_v it_o but_o protestant_n that_o grant_v that_o the_o proper_a image_n of_o adore_a person_n may_v be_v lawful_o make_v but_o deny_v they_o may_v be_v lawful_o adore_v have_v against_o they_o the_o light_n and_o instinct_n of_o nature_n and_o for_o they_o neither_o any_o example_n of_o scripture_n nor_o any_o text_n that_o may_v make_v so_o much_o as_o a_o little_a show_n they_o or_o not_o against_o we_o which_o i_o prove_v thus_o the_o image_n we_o be_v forbid_v to_o worship_n we_o be_v forbid_v to_o make_v thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n thou_o shall_v not_o adore_v they_o nor_o worship_v they_o contrariwise_o the_o image_n we_o may_v lawful_o make_v we_o may_v also_o lawful_o adore_v or_o worship_n if_o they_o be_v image_n of_o venerable_a and_o adorable_a person_n as_o before_o have_v be_v show_v but_o the_o image_n we_o worship_v of_o christ_n protestant_n make_n yea_o some_o to_o wit_n lutheran_n set_v they_o up_o in_o their_o church_n and_o they_o be_v image_n of_o a_o adorable_a person_n ergo_fw-la they_o can_v condemn_v our_o adoration_n of_o image_n except_o likewise_o they_o condemn_v their_o make_v they_o as_o against_o god_n law_n if_o they_o answer_v we_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o make_v they_o but_o only_o not_o to_o make_v they_o with_o purpose_n &_o intention_n to_o adore_v they_o they_o discover_v much_o partiality_n and_o not_o so_o much_o reverence_n to_o god_n express_a ãâã_d as_o they_o pretend_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n law_n be_v as_o clear_v and_o express_v against_o make_v of_o image_n as_o against_o worshippinge_n of_o they_o thou_o shall_v not_o make_v they_o thou_o shall_v not_o adore_v they_o if_o then_o protestant_n to_o excuse_v their_o custom_n of_o make_v of_o image_n may_v to_o god_n express_a word_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v they_o add_v by_o way_n of_o explication_n with_o purpose_n and_o intention_n to_o adore_v they_o why_o may_v not_o they_o not_o the_o minister_n pag._n 259._o object_n that_o this_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o a_o grave_a image_n be_v expound_v by_o the_o great_a number_n of_o papist_n to_o wit_n with_o purpose_n to_o adore_v i_o answer_v some_o catholic_a interpreter_n expound_v thou_o shall_v not_o make_v any_o image_n to_o wit_n with_o purpose_n to_o worship_v the_o same_o as_o god_n or_o with_o divine_a worship_n refer_v unto_o it_o or_o
to_o some_o godhead_n affix_v unto_o it_o not_o absolute_o not_o to_o worship_v it_o which_o exposition_n be_v true_a for_o matter_n though_o not_o so_o conform_v to_o the_o letter_n now_o that_o these_o author_n do_v not_o understand_v that_o all_o honour_v of_o image_n be_v here_o forbid_v but_o only_a adoration_n of_o image_n as_o god_n or_o as_o if_o some_o godhead_n or_o divine_a intellectual_a virtue_n be_v affix_v unto_o they_o be_v evident_a by_o their_o word_n for_o the_o author_n be_v gerson_n caietan_n castro_n oleaster_n stella_n turrecremata_fw-la ferus_fw-la aquinas_n but_o nothing_o more_o notorious_a than_o that_o some_o of_o these_o hold_v worship_n of_o image_n &_o the_o same_o may_v be_v demonstrate_v of_o every_o one_o let_v the_o first_o to_o wit_n gerson_n speak_v for_o the_o rest_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n fol._n 173._o we_o must_v say_v he_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n his_o bless_a mother_n &_o saint_n not_o for_o themselves_o but_o by_o see_v they_o to_o give_v honour_n unto_o the_o holy_a person_n represent_v by_o they_o catholik_o to_o defend_v from_o note_n of_o impiety_n a_o continue_a christian_a custom_n to_o god_n word_n thou_o shall_v not_o adore_v any_o image_n add_v by_o way_n of_o explication_n as_o god_n or_o with_o divine_a worship_n rest_v in_o it_o how_o can_v they_o true_o boast_v they_o bring_v god_n clear_a word_n for_o themselves_o and_o against_o we_o which_o be_v no_o less_o clear_a and_o express_v against_o their_o image-making_a then_o against_o our_o image-worship_n if_o the_o place_n be_v difficile_a why_o build_v they_o their_o faith_n upon_o it_o against_o we_o if_o it_o be_v clear_a why_o be_v they_o force_v in_o their_o defence_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o express_a text_n second_o their_o exposition_n be_v not_o only_o violent_a against_o the_o text_n but_o also_o incongruous_a against_o the_o sense_n for_o god_n prohibition_n of_o a_o thing_n do_v also_o forbid_v the_o intention_n thereof_o in_o the_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v the_o intention_n of_o murder_n be_v sufficient_o forbid_v so_o that_o he_o who_o make_v a_o sword_n with_o purpose_n to_o murder_v his_o enemy_n sin_n against_o the_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v wherefore_o if_o god_n precept_n have_v be_v this_o thoâââ_n all_v not_o wear_v about_o thou_o any_o weapon_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v the_o prohibition_n of_o wear_v weapon_n shall_v have_v be_v absolute_a and_o not_o only_o with_o purpose_n of_o murder_n in_o like_a manner_n god_n precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o adore_v image_n do_v sufficient_o forbid_v intention_n to_o adore_v they_o and_o consequen_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o image_n with_o such_o a_o intention_n so_o that_o if_o the_o precept_n not_o to_o make_v image_n be_v nothing_o else_o then_o not_o to_o have_v purpose_n to_o adore_v they_o a_o whole_a long_a sentence_n in_o the_o decalogue_n be_v superfluous_a &_o without_o any_o special_a sense_n beside_o as_o to_o make_v a_o image_n to_o adore_v it_o be_v idolatry_n so_o likewise_o to_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n or_o look_v on_o it_o to_o that_o purpose_n why_o then_o be_v not_o such_o look_a or_o touch_v with_o purpose_n of_o adoration_n express_o forbid_v aswell_o as_o make_v or_o if_o look_v on_o they_o with_o intention_n to_o adore_v be_v so_o include_v in_o the_o precept_n thou_o shall_v not_o adore_v as_o there_o need_v not_o that_o expression_n what_o need_n be_v there_o that_o make_n of_o image_n with_o purpose_n of_o adoration_n shall_v be_v so_o large_o and_o particular_o express_v wherefore_o whosoever_o be_v a_o religious_a follower_n of_o god_n pure_a word_n must_v either_o without_o explication_n condemn_v the_o make_n of_o image_n together_o with_o their_o worship_n or_o else_o allow_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n if_o the_o prototype_n be_v adorable_a the_o make_v whereof_o he_o approve_v hence_o i_o gather_v that_o the_o most_o natural_a and_o true_a exposition_n of_o that_o precept_n be_v that_o it_o forbid_v not_o only_o the_o worship_n but_o also_o the_o make_n of_o any_o graved_a image_n but_o how_o to_o wit_n of_o false_a god_n or_o to_o represent_v god_n accord_v to_o his_o divine_a substance_n image_n substance_n this_o exposition_n be_v show_v to_o be_v good_a by_o the_o two_o rule_n of_o exposition_n which_o protestant_n themselves_o appoint_v the_o first_o be_v that_o when_o a_o word_n be_v ambiguous_a and_o difficile_a we_o be_v to_o look_v to_o the_o antecedent_n and_o declare_v the_o same_o with_o reference_n to_o they_o this_o text_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v any_o image_n be_v difficil_n as_o sound_v over_o universal_o even_o in_o protestant_n judgement_n by_o look_v unto_o the_o word_n immediate_o precedent_a this_o universality_n be_v restrain_v to_o a_o true_a sense_n for_o the_o word_n immediate_o precedent_n be_v thou_o shall_v not_o have_v false_a god_n before_o i_o now_o if_o we_o expound_v what_o follow_v thou_o shall_v not_o make_v any_o image_n by_o reference_n unto_o this_o to_o wit_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v any_o image_n of_o false_a god_n the_o sense_n be_v clear_a truth_n the_o second_o rule_n be_v when_o a_o place_n be_v difficil_n we_o must_v expound_v the_o same_o by_o another_o speak_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n that_o be_v clear_a but_o the_o scripture_n treat_v of_o this_o precept_n do_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n exod._n 10.13_o clear_o declare_v these_o forbid_a image_n to_o be_v the_o image_n of_o false_a god_n say_v non_fw-la facietis_fw-la deos_fw-la argenteos_fw-la nec_fw-la deos_fw-la aureos_fw-la facietis_fw-la vobis_fw-la you_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o yourselves_o god_n of_o gold_n or_o of_o silver_n behold_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o grave_a image_n this_o sense_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o word_n precedent_n thou_o shall_v not_o have_v strange_a god_n before_o i_o which_o be_v explicate_v in_o the_o consequent_a verse_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n to_o wit_n of_o false_a god_n for_o he_o that_o make_v to_o himself_o the_o image_n of_o any_o thing_n as_o apt_a to_o represent_v god_n according_a to_o his_o divine_a substance_n and_o to_o convey_v our_o imagination_n direct_o to_o he_o do_v make_v and_o have_v false_a god_n because_o the_o true_a god_n be_v not_o imaginable_a nor_o be_v true_o apprehend_v by_o imagination_n conformable_a unto_o any_o image_n wherefore_o the_o picture_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o form_n of_o a_o dove_n and_o of_o god_n the_o father_n in_o form_n of_o a_o old_a man_n be_v not_o proper_a &_o direct_a image_n of_o the_o two_o divine_a person_n but_o only_o of_o the_o dove_n that_o descend_v on_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o old_a man_n see_v by_o daniel_n in_o a_o vision_n in_o which_o the_o perfection_n of_o these_o person_n be_v not_o lively_o represent_v but_o a_o far_o off_o and_o imperfect_o shadow_v nor_o do_v catholik_o use_v they_o as_o proper_a image_n stand_a for_o their_o prototype_n &_o conveyinge_v our_o action_n by_o imagination_n unto_o they_o for_o no_o catholic_a do_v kiss_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o dove_n or_o lie_v prostrate_a at_o they_o refer_v by_o imagination_n that_o outward_a subjection_n to_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o have_v no_o foot_n but_o metaphorical_a not_o imaginable_a nor_o such_o as_o can_v be_v represent_v by_o image_n wherefore_o see_v this_o text_n be_v thus_o clear_o explicable_a and_o not_o be_v explicate_v at_o all_o do_v make_v no_o less_o against_o protestant_n then_o against_o we_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o much_o out_o of_o love_n with_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n jesus_n their_o lord_n to_o which_o nature_n &_o christianity_n bind_v they_o inconvenience_n which_o may_v come_v by_o occasion_n of_o image_n easy_o prevent_v and_o their_o utilitye_n very_o great_a §._o 4._o another_z argument_n against_o image_n protestant_n much_o urge_v that_o they_o be_v stumbling-blocke_n for_o simple_a people_n who_o easy_o take_v a_o image_n to_o be_v the_o very_a god_n even_o as_o the_o pagan_n do_v in_o former_a time_n attire_v time_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 268._o that_o papist_n themselves_o complain_v that_o people_n do_v comnit_fw-la idolatry_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o imag_n to_o which_o purpose_n he_o cite_v vives_z gerson_n cornelius_z agrippa_z durandus_fw-la mimatensis_n gabriel_n biel._n cassander_n polidore_n answer_n first_o the_o minister_n have_v by_o some_o trick_n or_o other_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o almost_o every_o one_o of_o these_o seven_o which_o be_v over_o long_o here_o to_o discover_v second_o the_o witness_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n or_o speak_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n cassander_n be_v no_o papist_n but_o a_o protestant_n &_o put_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n among_o heretic_n of_o the_o first_o rank_n cornelius_z agrippa_z a_o necromant_n
the_o creed_n and_o prime_a principle_n of_o christianity_n in_o plain_a and_o catechisticall_a manner_n beside_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o keep_v her_o child_n from_o believe_v that_o image_n be_v god_n or_o true_a live_a thing_n or_o that_o any_o divinity_n or_o divine_a virtue_n reside_v in_o they_o as_o may_v be_v prove_v convince_o in_o my_o judgement_n by_o experience_n have_v of_o her_o power_n in_o this_o kind_n about_o a_o point_n more_o difficile_a for_o what_o may_v seem_v more_o evident_a than_o that_o a_o consecrate_a host_n be_v bread_n of_o which_o four_o sense_n sight_n feeling_n smell_v taste_n give_v in_o evidence_n as_o of_o bread_n no_o less_o very_o they_o any_o other_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v discern_v and_o yet_o so_o potent_a be_v the_o word_n &_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n ground_v on_o general_a counsel_n declare_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o transubstantiation_n as_o catholic_n deny_v their_o sense_n believe_v assure_o that_o what_o seem_v bread_n be_v not_o bread_n but_o the_o true_a body_n of_o our_o saviour_n under_o the_o form_n of_o accident_n of_o bread_n now_o can_v any_o man_n with_o any_o show_n of_o the_o least_o probability_n in_o the_o world_n think_v that_o it_o be_v difficile_a for_o this_o church_n to_o persuade_v her_o child_n that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o live_a thing_n nor_o have_v any_o godhead_n or_o live_v divine_a power_n lodge_v in_o it_o as_o plain_a scripture_n show_v and_o general_n catholic_a counsel_n particular_o the_o tridentine_n sess_v 25._o and_o the_o nicene_n act_n 7._o define_v which_o doctrine_n neither_o reason_n nor_o sense_n can_v mislike_v or_o shall_v the_o sole_a similitude_n of_o member_n correspondent_a unto_o humane_a live_a member_n which_o image_n have_v so_o much_o prevail_v in_o catholic_a mind_n so_o to_o bow_v down_o their_o thought_n to_o base_a idolatry_n as_o to_o think_v a_o stock_n or_o a_o stone_n to_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a by_o her_o teach_n to_o direct_v they_o to_o a_o more_o high_a &_o divine_a apprehension_n be_v able_a to_o make_v they_o firm_o believe_v a_o consecrate_a host_n be_v not_o bread_n against_o the_o judgement_n that_o they_o will_v otherwise_o frame_v upon_o most_o notorious_a evidency_n of_o sense_n the_o protestant_n church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v no_o great_a vigour_n by_o preach_v to_o persuade_v common_a people_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o anthropomorphits_n see_v their_o principle_n be_v that_o a_o world_n of_o preacher_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v against_o the_o evident_a scripture_n yea_o 4._o yea_o here_o the_o minister_n be_v bitter_a saying_n p._n 277._o lin_v 30._o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o papist_n to_o deal_v sincere_o that_o his_o brother_n m._n john_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o every_o private_a man_n nor_o any_o company_n of_o people_n but_o that_o one_o michaia_n one_o stephen_n one_o athanasius_n with_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n in_o mouth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v against_o 4._o hundred_o baalite_n i_o answer_v the_o minister_n deny_v his_o brother_n speak_v of_o every_o particular_a man_n shall_v receive_v his_o doom_n by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o brother_n own_o mouth_n tell_v he_o the_o contrary_a who_o thus_o write_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o jesuite_n to_o wit_n way_n pag._n 126._o lin_v 12._o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o necessary_a for_o every_o particular_a man_n to_o try_v all_o thing_n and_o by_o the_o scripture_n to_o examine_v and_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o thing_n the_o church_n teach_v he_o and_o when_o a_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n reject_v the_o teach_n of_o a_o church_n as_o great_a and_o good_a as_o the_o roman_a catholic_a his_o judgement_n therein_o be_v not_o private_a as_o private_a be_v oppose_v to_o spiritval_n nor_o say_v he_o pag._n 128._o lin_v 2._o be_v it_o impossible_a for_o a_o private_a man_n to_o espy_v a_o error_n in_o the_o best_a church_n that_o be_v and_o pa._n 150._o lin_v 18._o whereas_o the_o catholics_n answer_n that_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n try_v the_o spirit_n do_v not_o allow_v every_o man_n to_o do_v this_o but_o only_a pastor_n the_o minister_n repli_v this_o be_v all_o false_a for_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n john_n speak_v indifferent_o of_o all_o man_n every_o man_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o try_v spirit_n that_o epistle_n be_v direct_v not_o to_o the_o clergy_n but_o to_o the_o people_z and_o the_o reason_n add_v show_v that_o the_o people_z be_v they_o that_o must_v try_v spirit_n for_o they_o must_v try_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v seduce_v by_o false_a prophet_n and_o such_o be_v the_o people_z and_o therefore_o they_o must_v examine_v they_o all_o these_o be_v his_o brother_n johns_n word_n now_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v whether_o john_n white_a do_v not_o hold_v that_o not_o only_o extraordinary_a prophet_n as_o michaeas_n &_o stephen_n not_o only_o chief_a patriarch_n as_o athanasius_n but_o that_o every_o particular_a man_n of_o the_o people_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o condemn_v as_o great_a a_o church_n as_o the_o protestant_n if_o by_o his_o spiritual_a exposition_n or_o by_o the_o spirit_n he_o be_v move_v so_o to_o do_v what_o reason_n then_o have_v our_o minister_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o allegation_n to_o be_v so_o bitter_a as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a âor_a papist_n to_o deal_v sincere_o very_o m._n francis_n have_v you_o as_o much_o natural_a understanding_n together_o with_o knowledge_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n as_o have_v your_o brother_n john_n you_o will_v see_v this_o doctrine_n that_o every_o private_a man_n be_v by_o divine_a order_n and_o institution_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o church_n how_o absurd_a soever_o to_o be_v necessary_o consequent_a of_o the_o protestant_a principle_n that_o every_o man_n must_v final_o resolve_v his_o faith_n into_o the_o light_n of_o the_o scripture_n yea_o i_o can_v show_v how_o yourself_o even_o in_o this_o reply_n have_v give_v this_o authority_n of_o judge_v the_o church_n unto_o every_o private_a man_n as_o may_v partly_o appear_v by_o the_o censure_n sect_n 4._o that_o a_o common_a ordinary_a man_n by_o scripture_n may_v oppose_v as_o great_a and_o great_a church_n then_o be_v the_o whole_a protestant_n doctor_n white_a in_o his_o way_n pag._n 59_o which_o principle_n be_v lay_v how_o will_v they_o convince_v people_n that_o god_n be_v a_o pure_a spirit_n who_o the_o scripture_n do_v so_o perpetual_o set_v forth_o as_o have_v humane_a member_n i_o may_v conclude_v therefore_o that_o their_o translate_n scripture_n into_o their_o vulgar_a language_n breed_v more_o danger_n unto_o common_a people_n than_o our_o make_n of_o image_n but_o they_o will_v say_v the_o translation_n of_o scripture_n into_o vulgar_a language_n be_v command_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o apostolical_a church_n practise_v it_o whereas_o we_o can_v prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v warrant_n or_o practice_v the_o set_n up_o of_o image_n this_o they_o say_v with_o great_a confidence_n but_o any_o substantial_a proof_n of_o this_o their_o say_n i_o can_v never_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o testimony_n they_o bring_v in_o this_o behalf_n search_v the_o scripture_n let_v his_o word_n dwell_v plentiful_o among_o you_o etc._n etc._n be_v insufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o direct_a and_o express_v precept_n or_o practice_n of_o translate_n scripture_n into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n catholic_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n though_o they_o boast_v not_o of_o scripture_n as_o know_v that_o nothing_o be_v so_o clear_o set_v down_o in_o it_o but_o malapert_a error_n may_v contend_v against_o it_o with_o some_o show_n of_o probability_n yet_o have_v scripture_n much_o more_o clear_a and_o express_v then_o any_o that_o protestant_n can_v bring_v for_o themselves_o even_o about_o the_o use_n of_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_v in_o the_o first_o apostolical_a church_n s._n paul_n to_o the_o galatian_n c._n 3._o v._n 1._o say_v o_o you_o foolish_a galathian_o who_o have_v bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o obey_v the_o truth_n before_o who_o eye_n christ_n jesus_n be_v lively_o set_v forth_o crucify_a among_o you_o the_o greek_a word_n correspond_v to_o the_o english_a lively_o set_v forth_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v to_o paint_v forth_o a_o thing_n in_o so_o much_o as_o even_o beza_n translate_v jesus_n christus_fw-la depictus_fw-la câucifixus_n jesus_n christ_n paint_v or_o picture_v crucify_v before_o your_o eye_n so_o that_o we_o have_v in_o plain_a and_o express_v term_n that_o christ_n be_v picture_v as_o crucify_a in_o the_o apostolical_a church_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v
theodos._n nor_o as_o the_o sanctifier_n of_o our_o soul_n dwell_v in_o the_o same_o by_o grace_n hierom_n in_o proverb_n c._n 2._o nullum_fw-la invocare_fw-la idââ_n intus_fw-la orando_fw-la vocare_fw-la nisi_fw-la deum_fw-la debemus_fw-la three_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o invocate_v saint_n by_o direct_a prayer_n in_o the_o lyturgy_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n the_o devotion_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v to_o god_n only_o augustine_n lib._n 22._o the_o civet_n c._n 10._o carthag_n 4._o c._n 23._o four_o that_o our_o friend_n that_o be_v decease_v do_v not_o now_o hear_v we_o in_o the_o familiar_a manner_n they_o be_v wont_v converse_v with_o us._n hierom._n ad_fw-la heliodor_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la nepotiam_fw-la whatsoever_o i_o write_v seem_v to_o be_v dead_a &_o ãâã_d because_o nepotian_n do_v not_o hear_v it_o to_o wit_n iâ_n visible_a manner_n delight_v therein_o and_o applaud_v the_o same_o as_o he_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v in_o his_o life-time_n 6._o life-time_n hence_o appear_v the_o impertinency_n of_o the_o minister_n that_o so_o often_o urge_v this_o place_n of_o s._n hierome_n pag._n 29.2_o lin_v 22._o orthodox_n pa._n 54._o li._n 6._o five_o that_o they_o do_v not_o know_v what_o be_v do_v in_o this_o world_n by_o their_o natural_a force_n augustine_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la c._n 16._o per_fw-la divinam_fw-la potentiam_fw-la martyr_n vivorum_fw-la rebus_fw-la intersunt_fw-la quoniam_fw-la defuncti_fw-la per_fw-la naturam_fw-la propriam_fw-la vivorum_fw-la rebus_fw-la interest_n non_fw-la possunt_fw-la six_o speak_v unto_o some_o decease_a person_n they_o make_v a_o if_o whether_o they_o hear_v they_o or_o not_o because_o they_o speak_v unto_o such_o as_o they_o know_v not_o certain_o to_o be_v saint_n nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 3._o in_o julian._n praise_n julian._n the_o minister_n here_o say_v do_v not_o the_o father_n reckon_v constantine_n to_o be_v in_o joy_n and_o glory_n and_o yet_o gregory_n nazianzen_n use_v a_o apostrophe_n to_o he_o say_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o great_a constantine_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o thing_n i_o answer_v you_o falsify_v the_o text_n of_o nazianzen_n both_o in_o the_o greek_a &_o in_o your_o english_a translation_n for_o his_o word_n be_v hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o great_a constantius_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o thing_n yea_o that_o we_o may_v see_v you_o corrupt_v the_o text_n wilful_o &_o against_o your_o conscience_n even_o in_o this_o very_a reply_n &_o in_o this_o point_n âf_a controversy_n you_o cite_v the_o same_o pag._n 359._o light_v a._n in_o this_o manner_n audi_fw-la etiam_fw-la ãâã_d constantij_fw-la magni_fw-la anima_fw-la siquis_fw-la mortuus_fw-la sensus_fw-la est_fw-la hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o âreat_a constantius_n etc._n etc._n now_o constantius_n be_v a_o arian_n and_o a_o persecutor_n of_o catholic_n unto_o his_o die_a day_n though_o on_o his_o death_n bed_n it_o be_v say_v âe_v make_v some_o kind_n of_o repentance_n hence_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n may_v doubt_v âf_o his_o be_v in_o glory_n and_o say_v hear_v if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o ââinges_n the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o funeral_n oration_n for_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n where_o he_o say_v sister_n admit_v of_o this_o oration_n in_o lieu_n of_o many_o funeral_n offering_n if_o this_o reward_n be_v give_v to_o holy_a soul_n to_o feel_v these_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_n of_o she_o hear_v his_o prayer_n but_o only_o whether_o she_o receive_v a_o humane_a natural_a content_n in_o that_o his_o affectuous_a panigyricall_a make_v in_o her_o praise_n this_o truth_n suppose_v i_o can_v but_o conceive_v that_o your_o majesty_n profess_v so_o much_o love_n to_o the_o first_o primitive_a age_n may_v deceive_v satisfaction_n about_o this_o point_n the_o cause_n of_o protestant_n dislike_n be_v weak_a and_o not_o to_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o strength_n of_o so_o long_o continue_v authority_n as_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v in_o their_o eight_o usual_a exception_n invocation_n of_o saint_n not_o to_o be_v dislike_v because_o not_o express_v in_o scripture_n §._o 2._o and_o first_o i_o must_v satisfy_v the_o transcendentall_a cause_n of_o their_o dislike_n rhem._n dislike_n confess_v august_n art_n 12._o fulke_o against_o rhem._n which_o be_v that_o worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n decease_v be_v not_o where_o express_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n without_o express_a warrant_n whereof_o nothing_o may_v lawful_o be_v do_v that_o belong_v to_o religion_n but_o this_o though_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o devotion_n in_o the_o conceit_n of_o common_a people_n be_v altogether_o unworthy_a of_o the_o erudition_n of_o any_o learned_a protestant_n for_o howsoever_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o separation_n they_o do_v mandato_fw-la do_v luther_n l_o de_fw-la seruo_fw-la arb_n &_o serm_n de_fw-fr cruse_n sive_fw-la expresso_fw-la dei_fw-la mandato_fw-la cry_v for_o express_v scripture_n express_v command_n oâ_n the_o write_a word_n yet_o now_o they_o be_v ãâã_d go_v 89._o go_v wotton_n in_o his_o trial_n pag._n 89._o from_o that_o principle_n as_o they_o be_v exceed_o angry_a 228._o angry_a john_n white_a in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 228._o with_o we_o that_o wâ_n shall_v think_v that_o any_o of_o they_o be_v ãâã_d any_o time_n broacher_n of_o such_o a_o absurdity_n wherefore_o in_o their_o write_a book_n whââ_n they_o teach_v in_o pulpit_n i_o know_v not_o they_o 6._o they_o d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o whitaker_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scrip._n cont_n 1._o q._n 6._o disclaim_v from_o express_a scripture_n and_o think_v it_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n of_o a_o christâââ_n custom_n that_o the_o same_o be_v scripture_n be_v note_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n and_o another_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n all_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o every_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v so_o ground_v on_o scripture_n that_o it_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n ground_v ââ_o scripture_n that_o be_v may_v be_v deduce_v by_o good_a discourse_n from_o truth_n reveal_v therein_o ãâã_d be_v prove_v consonant_n to_o the_o rule_n &_o principle_n thereof_o according_a to_o which_o ample_a extent_n of_o scripture_n unto_o thing_n deducible_a from_o they_o or_o consonant_n unto_o they_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a custom_n that_o have_v not_o warrant_n in_o god_n word_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v this_o only_a we_o require_v that_o ignorant_a people_n be_v not_o judge_n of_o such_o inference_n a_o office_n so_o far_o above_o their_o capacity_n as_o i_o be_o persuade_v no_o unlearned_a man_n that_o have_v in_o he_o any_o spark_n of_o humility_n or_o any_o mediocrity_n of_o judgement_n will_v undertake_v it_o for_o no_o man_n be_v competent_a to_o judge_v assure_o of_o argument_n by_o deduction_n from_o scripture_n that_o have_v not_o exact_a skill_n of_o scripture_n to_o know_v the_o false_a sense_n from_o the_o true_a as_o of_o logic_n to_o distinguish_v syllogism_n from_o paralogisme_n be_v able_a to_o give_v sentence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o principle_n by_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o inference_n by_o the_o other_o a_o thing_n so_o hard_o as_o even_o learned_a divines_n do_v much_o suspect_v their_o own_o sufficiency_n to_o judge_v of_o deduction_n &_o dare_v not_o absolute_o pronounce_v their_o sentence_n but_o refer_v the_o same_o to_o definition_n of_o authority_n which_o beside_o skill_n of_o scripture_n &_o logic_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n perpetual_a assistance_n in_o teach_v the_o christian_a church_n wherefore_o if_o protestant_n will_v bind_v we_o to_o bring_v express_a scripture_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o imag_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o saintes_n they_o must_v themselves_o likewise_o be_v bind_v to_o bring_v express_a scripture_n against_o anabaptist_n for_o scripture_n for_o d._n field_n l._n 4._o of_o the_o church_n c._n 20._o say_v it_o be_v not_o where_o express_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n christen_v of_o infant_n and_o for_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o sunday_n in_o lieu_n of_o the_o ancient_a sabboath_n day_n for_o their_o dedicate_a of_o practice_n of_o concern_v the_o protestant_n keep_v festival_n day_n of_o saint_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n the_o minister_n say_v not_o a_o word_n which_o be_v tacit_o to_o grant_v that_o this_o duty_n of_o religion_n be_v use_v pious_o by_o the_o english_a church_n although_o the_o same_o want_v the_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n why_o then_o may_v not_o catholic_n pray_v unto_o saintes_n though_o there_o be_v no_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n for_o such_o practice_n day_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n for_o the_o appear_v the_o concern_v the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 302._o that_o it_o be_v
the_o apostle_n prefer_v prayer_n that_o do_v edify_v the_o understanding_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o prohibit_v prayer_n of_o mere_a affection_n without_o new_a instruction_n of_o the_o understanding_n but_o say_v that_o in_o such_o prayer_n man_n pray_v with_o their_o spirit_n and_o affection_n though_o not_o with_o their_o understanding_n now_o that_o s._n paul_n do_v command_v that_o service_n shall_v be_v in_o such_o a_o language_n as_o every_o woman_n in_o the_o church_n may_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v it_o word_n by_o word_n lawful_a word_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 374._o that_o ignorance_n of_o the_o distinct_a notion_n of_o every_o word_n hinder_v not_o sufficient_a edification_n when_o the_o ordinary_a necessary_a and_o common_a passage_n of_o the_o public_a service_n be_v intelligible_a thus_o he_o now_o i_o subsume_v but_o people_n who_o understand_v not_o latin_a distinct_o may_v by_o instruction_n through_o book_n sermon_n and_o cathechisme_n understand_v the_o ordinary_a necessary_a and_o common_a passage_n of_o the_o public_a service_n special_o by_o the_o help_n of_o use_n and_o custom_n as_o experience_n show_v ergo_fw-la public_a prayer_n in_o latin_a may_v yield_v sufficient_a edification_n and_o so_o be_v lawful_a be_v incredible_a nor_o be_v our_o adversary_n able_a to_o prove_v it_o neither_o can_v they_o show_v by_o any_o record_n of_o antiquity_n that_o such_o a_o custom_n be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o the_o contrary_n may_v more_o than_o probable_o be_v show_v because_o the_o drift_n of_o the_o church_n in_o appoint_v liturgy_n or_o set_v form_n of_o public_a prayer_n at_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o eucharistical_a sacrifice_n be_v not_o for_o the_o word_n the_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o indeed_o the_o end_n of_o public_a service_n be_v not_o to_o instruct_v people_n yet_o the_o prayer_n must_v be_v say_v in_o a_o language_n understand_v of_o all_o because_o they_o which_o come_v to_o god_n with_o sound_n of_o word_n without_o understanding_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n answer_n he_o that_o offer_v unto_o god_n vocal_a prayer_n full_a of_o devout_a &_o pious_a affection_n know_v only_o in_o general_a that_o they_o be_v pious_a devout_a &_o express_v such_o affection_n offer_v a_o grateful_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n though_o he_o do_v not_o distinct_o understand_v the_o word_n and_o part_n of_o the_o prayer_n for_o example_n if_o one_o that_o understand_v not_o latin_n believe_v the_o psalm_n miserere_fw-la to_o be_v full_a of_o penitent_a affection_n and_o say_v the_o same_o with_o many_o tear_n of_o inward_a sorrow_n &_o contrition_n for_o his_o sin_n whosoever_o will_v say_v that_o this_o man_n offer_v unto_o god_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n be_v himself_o a_o infidel_n or_o foole._n for_o what_o great_a folly_n then_o to_o think_v that_o prayer_n of_o pious_a affection_n please_v not_o god_n except_o the_o affection_n correspond_v mathematical_o to_o the_o word_n people_n instruction_n but_o for_o other_o reason_n first_o that_o by_o this_o public_a service_n a_o continual_a daily_a tribute_n or_o homage_n of_o prayer_n &_o thanksgiving_n may_v be_v public_o offer_v and_o pay_v unto_o god_n second_o that_o christian_n by_o their_o personal_a assistance_n at_o this_o public_a service_n may_v protest_v &_o exercise_v exterior_o act_n of_o religion_n common_a with_o the_o whole_a church_n represent_v by_o the_o synaxis_n or_o ecclesiastical_a meeting_n of_o every_o christian_a parish_n final_o to_o the_o end_n that_o every_o christian_n by_o his_o presence_n yield_v consent_n unto_o the_o public_a prayer_n praise_n and_o thankesgiving_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o it_o be_v subscribe_v &_o set_v his_o seal_n unto_o they_o by_o this_o assist_v at_o they_o may_v ordinary_o participate_v of_o the_o grace_n benefit_n &_o fruit_n which_o the_o church_n do_v obtain_v by_o her_o liturgye_n and_o public_a oblation_n now_o for_o this_o end_n there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o every_o one_o shall_v understand_v word_n by_o word_n the_o prayer_n that_o be_v say_v in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n but_o it_o suffice_v that_o the_o church_n in_o general_a and_o in_o particular_a pastor_n and_o ecclesiastical_a person_n dedicate_v unto_o the_o ministerye_n of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o watch_n be_v bind_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o soul_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n have_v particular_a notice_n of_o all_o the_o prayer_n that_o be_v say_v and_o that_o all_o who_o will_n may_v be_v teach_v &_o instruct_v in_o particular_a if_o they_o will_v use_v diligence_n &_o desire_v it_o moreover_o the_o church_n ancient_o even_o in_o the_o pure_a time_n of_o christianity_n have_v chancel_v unto_o which_o layman_n may_v not_o enter_v &_o so_o can_v not_o particular_o and_o distinct_o understand_v be_v understand_v it_o have_v be_v folly_n for_o the_o church_n intend_v her_o liturgy_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o lay-man_n to_o have_v exclude_v they_o out_o of_o the_o chancell_v and_o though_o our_o adversary_n say_v that_o the_o priest_n read_v service_n in_o so_o audible_a a_o voice_n as_o he_o may_v be_v hear_v from_o the_o high_a of_o the_o chancel_n where_o the_o altar_n be_v place_v unto_o the_o body_n of_o church_n yet_o this_o he_o may_v better_o have_v speak_v unto_o fool_n then_o unto_o man_n of_o understanding_n that_o know_v how_o great_a the_o chancell_v of_o many_o church_n be_v and_o how_o far_o distinct_o audible_a a_o man_n voice_n ordinary_o be_v the_o prayer_n say_v by_o the_o public_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n within_o the_o say_a chancell_v they_o do_v also_o use_v to_o say_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o liturgy_n 34._o liturgy_n vide_fw-la liturgias_fw-la impressas_fw-la anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1568._o basil._n in_o liturg_n fol._n 34._o secret_o so_o that_o their_o voice_n be_v not_o audible_a unto_o any_o yea_o the_o greek_a church_n do_v ancient_o use_v a_o veil_n pop._n veil_n basil._n ibidem_fw-la fol._n 34.38.41.43.46_o &_o chrysostom_n liturg._n fol._n 55._o &_o hom_n 61._o ad_fw-la pop._n wherewith_o the_o priest_n be_v for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o sacred_a oblation_n compass_v which_o be_v manifest_a sign_n that_o the_o church_n do_v never_o think_v it_o necessary_a that_o all_o the_o public_a liturgy_n shall_v be_v hear_v much_o less_o word_n by_o word_n understand_v by_o the_o whole_a vulgar_a multitude_n present_v thereat_o beside_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o read_v in_o any_o language_n but_o greek_a over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n as_o s._n hierome_n paralip_n hierome_n hieron_n praefat_fw-la in_o paralip_n witness_v also_o the_o greek_a liturgy_n of_o saint_n basill_n be_v use_v in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o grecian_a be_v not_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o all_o the_o country_n of_o the_o east_n as_o be_v apparent_a by_o manifest_a testimony_n particular_o of_o the_o 19_o the_o basil._n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la c._n 19_o cappadocian_o 11._o cappadocian_o hieron_n in_o prooem_n 2._o lib._n come_v ad_fw-la galat._n &_o act._n apost_n c._n 1._o v._n 10._o &_o 11._o mesopotamian_n 11._o mesopotamian_n hieron_n in_o prooem_n 2._o lib._n come_v ad_fw-la galat._n &_o act._n apost_n c._n 1._o v._n 10._o &_o 11._o galathian_o 13._o galathian_o theodoret._n in_o histor_n ss_z patrum_fw-la hist._n 13._o lycaonian_o anton._n lycaonian_o hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n eccles._n in_o anton._n egyptian_n syrian_n yea_o that_o all_o these_o country_n and_o most_o of_o the_o orient_a have_v their_o proper_a language_n distinct_a from_o the_o greek_a be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n no_o less_o manifest_a be_v it_o that_o the_o latin_a liturgy_n be_v common_a ancient_o for_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o western_a part_n even_o in_o africa_n as_o appear_v by_o testimony_n of_o s._n 173._o s._n august_n epist._n 57_o the_o doctrine_n christian._n l._n 2._o c._n 13._o august_n in_o psalm_n 123._o &_o in_o exposit_n ep._n ad_fw-la rom._n &_o epist_n 173._o augustine_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o latin_a be_v not_o the_o vulgar_a language_n for_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o west_n and_o though_o the_o better_a sort_n understand_v it_o yet_o some_o of_o the_o word_n the_o although_o the_o father_n say_v that_o the_o greek_a liturgy_n &_o translation_n do_v serve_v all_o asia_n and_o the_o east_n although_o likewise_o they_o affirm_v the_o same_o of_o the_o latin_a for_o all_o africa_n and_o the_o occident_n yet_o our_o minister_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_a pa._n 379._o and_o 380._o that_o all_o people_n have_v their_o liturgye_n in_o their_o native_a tongue_n which_o he_o prove_v because_o the_o people_n do_v then_o praise_n god_n in_o all_o language_n and_o do_v pray_v according_a to_o s._n justine_n and_o tertullian_n together_o with_o the_o priest_n ergo_fw-la the_o public_a liturgy_n be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n in_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n as_o his_o deny_v what_o
time_n quoniam_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la misericordia_fw-la eius_fw-la nor_o only_o of_o the_o 6.6_o the_o isa._n 6.6_o seraphim_n who_o in_o praise_v their_o creator_n repeat_v three_o time_n over_o the_o same_o word_n holy_a holy_a holy_a but_o also_o by_o the_o example_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o who_o thrice_o at_o least_o in_o the_o garden_n repeat_v the_o same_o prayer_n 42._o prayer_n matth._n 26._o v._n 4._o marc._n 14._o v._n 39_o eumdem_fw-la sermonem_fw-la dicens_fw-la luc._n 22._o v._n 42._o pater_fw-la si_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la transeat_fw-la à _fw-la i_o calix_n verumtamen_fw-la non_fw-la mea_fw-la voluntas_fw-la sed_fw-la tua_fw-la fiat_fw-la wherefore_o to_o repeat_v the_o same_o prayer_n be_v very_o good_a and_o pious_a so_o the_o same_o be_v do_v with_o new_a devotion_n which_o new_a devotion_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v want_v in_o our_o repetition_n there_o be_v appoint_v for_o every_o pater_n aue_fw-la &_o creed_n a_o special_a meditation_n that_o may_v stir_v up_o devotion_n at_o every_o repeat_v prayer_n and_o see_v we_o can_v pray_v long_o but_o we_o must_v needs_o repeat_v over_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la in_o sense_n for_o what_o can_v we_o demand_v of_o god_n that_o be_v not_o there_o contain_v why_o may_v we_o not_o also_o repeat_v the_o same_o in_o word_n if_o any_o think_v to_o merit_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o number_n of_o his_o prayer_n he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o attribute_n attent_a attribute_n the_o minister_n pag._n 385._o write_v in_o this_o sort_n i_o grant_v repetition_n in_o prayer_n and_o thankesgiving_n which_o agree_v with_o the_o example_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v pious_a and_o lawful_a but_o the_o illation_n from_o these_o to_o the_o roman_a battalogy_n be_v inconsequent_a first_o their_o prayer_n be_v in_o part_n direct_v to_o creature_n second_o they_o be_v multiply_v to_o a_o excessive_a and_o portentous_a number_n three_o the_o creed_n be_v no_o prayer_n or_o thanksgiving_n formal_o or_o virtual_o four_o they_o think_v pray_v without_o understand_v the_o word_n without_o present_a actual_a attention_n to_o be_v pious_a and_o effectual_a answer_n to_o avoid_v the_o shame_n of_o not_o be_v able_a to_o reply_v something_o at_o least_o in_o show_n you_o run_v direct_o upon_o his_o majesty_n &_o disgrace_v his_o question_n his_o majesty_n procede_v most_o judicious_o know_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la to_o be_v pious_a devotion_n first_o question_v the_o aue_fw-la maria_n or_o pray_v unto_o saint_n &_o also_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n &_o then_o suppose_v by_o way_n of_o argument_n that_o the_o say_n of_o pater_n ave_n &_o creed_n be_v pious_a he_o doubt_v about_o repetition_n of_o they_o in_o certain_a number_n as_o judge_v repetition_n even_o of_o pious_a and_o godly_a prayer_n in_o a_o fix_a number_n to_o be_v questionable_a special_o affix_v merit_n unto_o the_o number_n you_o convince_a by_o the_o jesuit_n grant_v repetition_n of_o pious_a prayer_n in_o certain_a number_n to_o be_v pious_a and_o so_o have_v grant_v what_o his_o majesty_n question_v &_o yet_o not_o to_o seem_v to_o grant_v it_o you_o make_v his_o majesties_n question_n to_o be_v whether_o repetition_n of_o unlawful_a prayer_n in_o a_o excessive_a number_n without_o attention_n be_v lawful_a which_o question_n be_v unworthy_a of_o his_o majesties_n judgement_n yea_o his_o majesty_n see_v the_o impertinency_n of_o this_o question_n do_v first_o move_v doubt_n about_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n that_o the_o lawfulness_n thereof_o may_v be_v suppose_v in_o this_o question_n know_v the_o question_n without_o this_o supposition_n to_o be_v senseless_a &_o foolish_a second_o according_a to_o your_o reply_n his_o majesty_n do_v not_o dislike_v our_o say_n 33._o pater_fw-la noster_n in_o memory_n of_o 33._o year_n our_o saviour_n live_v upon_o earth_n affix_v merit_n unto_o that_o number_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o number_n excessive_a nor_o the_o prayer_n unlawful_a nor_o be_v there_o any_o among_o we_o that_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o sense_n thereof_o and_o yet_o i_o think_v his_o majesty_n be_v not_o of_o this_o mind_n which_o show_v that_o he_o question_v repetition_n of_o pious_a prayer_n in_o a_o fix_a number_n and_o so_o your_o reply_n grant_v what_o he_o question_v three_o the_o aue_fw-la maria_n be_v not_o a_o prayer_n direct_v unto_o any_o creature_n as_o prayer_n signifyes_n petition_n of_o grace_n and_o favour_n because_o in_o the_o aue_fw-la maria_n we_o ask_v not_o grace_n nor_o any_o gift_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n but_o only_o that_o she_o will_v pray_v for_o we_o holy_a marry_o pray_v for_o we_o now_o and_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n if_o petition_n make_v unto_o creature_n that_o they_o will_v be_v comprecant_v with_o we_o be_v prayer_n direct_v unto_o creature_n then_o be_v crave_v the_o comprecation_n of_o live_a saint_n prayer_n final_o direct_v unto_o a_o creature_n four_o your_o say_n that_o the_o creed_n be_v no_o prayer_n neither_o formal_o nor_o virtual_o be_v the_o bare_a word_n of_o a_o minister_n against_o the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o use_v the_o creed_n as_o a_o prayer_n a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o define_v it_o in_o council_n quinosexto_fw-la can._n 7._o let_v every_o christian_a pray_v at_o the_o least_o twice_o a_o day_n say_v the_o creed_n or_o the_o lord_n prayer_n or_o qui_fw-la plasmasti_fw-la i_o miserere_fw-la mei_fw-la or_o deus_fw-la propitius_fw-la esto_fw-la mihi_fw-la peccatori_fw-la thus_o the_o council_n and_o who_o do_v not_o see_v the_o creed_n say_v unto_o god_n with_o inward_a devotion_n of_o faith_n about_o his_o divine_a perfection_n and_o mercy_n towards_o mankind_n there_o declare_v to_o be_v a_o prayer_n either_o of_o praise_n or_o thanksgiving_n or_o obsecration_n according_a to_o the_o affection_n of_o he_o that_o pray_v final_o your_o cavil_v that_o our_o prayer_n be_v say_v in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a and_o so_o without_o present_a attention_n be_v in_o your_o supposition_n often_o false_a see_v they_o that_o pray_v in_o these_o number_n most_o common_o either_o understand_v latin_a or_o else_o pray_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n &_o in_o the_o illation_n ridiculous_a for_o they_o that_o understand_v not_o the_o pater_n aue_fw-la and_o creed_n in_o latin_a may_v by_o memory_n know_v the_o substance_n thereof_o and_o so_o be_v actual_o attent_a not_o merit_v to_o prayer_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o number_n further_o than_o the_o number_n awake_v in_o we_o devout_a thought_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o by_o the_o number_n we_o aim_v at_o we_o say_v pater_n ave_n creed_n to_o the_o number_n of_o three_o in_o memory_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n seek_v god_n favour_n and_o grace_n by_o glorify_v that_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n to_o the_o number_n of_o five_o in_o memory_n of_o the_o five_o special_a wound_n our_o saviour_n receive_v that_o pierce_v into_o &_o through_o his_o sacred_a body_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 33._o in_o remembrance_n of_o 33._o year_n our_o saviour_n wrought_v our_o salvation_n upon_o earth_n give_v he_o thanks_n for_o all_o his_o labour_n desire_v the_o application_n of_o his_o merit_n stir_v up_o ourselves_o to_o the_o imitation_n of_o his_o virtue_n the_o like_a reason_n move_v we_o to_o pray_v in_o the_o number_n of_o 63._o angelical_a salutation_n to_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o year_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n live_v according_a to_o one_o probable_a opinion_n and_o because_o the_o opinion_n that_o she_o live_v 72._o year_n now_o begin_v to_o be_v much_o follow_v many_o catholic_n particular_o in_o spain_n have_v thereupon_o increase_v the_o crown_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n to_o 72._o aue_fw-la maria_n a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o they_o never_o attribute_v merit_n unto_o the_o number_n of_o 63._o but_o only_a to_o the_o devout_a memory_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n virtue_n exercise_v in_o the_o year_n she_o converse_v in_o this_o world_n give_v god_n thanks_n for_o his_o grace_n bestow_v upon_o she_o the_o psalter_n of_o our_o lady_n &_o the_o jesus_n psalter_n contain_v one_o hundred_o &_o fifty_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n the_o one_o of_o aue_fw-la maria_n the_o other_o jesu_n jesu_n jesu_n in_o imitation_n of_o the_o devout_a royal_a prophet_n who_o psalter_n contain_v psalm_n in_o god_n praise_n to_o the_o same_o number_n neither_o be_v we_o in_o this_o point_n of_o repeat_v prayer_n upon_o bead_n or_o little_a stone_n in_o a_o impetrate_v a_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o his_o majesty_n in_o his_o dislike_n of_o our_o affix_v merit_n to_o the_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n in_o a_o certain_a number_n mean_v to_o deny_v the_o merit_n of_o condignity_n not_o the_o merit_n of_o congruity_n or_o impetration_n i_o answer_v if_o you_o have_v study_v of_o purpose_n to_o make_v his_o majesty_n ridiculous_a in_o his_o proposition_n of_o question_n you_o
can_v not_o have_v more_o fond_o sense_v they_o for_o his_o majesty_n speak_v of_o prayer_n and_o deny_v merit_n unto_o the_o repeat_n of_o prayer_n what_o according_a to_o sense_n can_v he_o mean_v but_o the_o merit_n proper_a of_o prayer_n which_o be_v to_o impetrate_v or_o obtain_v and_o so_o the_o jesuit_n prove_v the_o special_a merit_n of_o impetration_n have_v prove_v what_o his_o majesty_n question_v as_o for_o yourself_o see_v you_o deny_v not_o that_o unto_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n special_a merit_n of_o impetration_n be_v affix_v i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o you_o yield_v the_o very_a doctrine_n his_o majesty_n dislike_v to_o wit_n that_o repetition_n of_o prayer_n in_o a_o fix_a number_n have_v special_a force_n and_o efficacy_n to_o impetrate_v certain_a number_n for_o the_o cause_n before_o mention_v destitute_a of_o the_o example_n of_o saint_n that_o live_v in_o the_o best_a age_n of_o the_o church_n palladius_n in_o his_o history_n cap._n 14._o &_o 25._o set_v down_o some_o example_n of_o saint_n pray_v in_o this_o kind_n yea_o the_o century-writer_n cent._n 4._o col_fw-fr 1329._o and_o osiander_n acknowledge_v the_o example_n of_o saint_n paul_n a_o most_o holy_a monk_n live_v in_o the_o four_o age_n after_o christ_n that_o in_o dies_fw-la singulos_fw-la trecentas_fw-la orationes_fw-la deo_fw-la velut_fw-la tributum_fw-la reddidit_fw-la ac_fw-la ne_fw-la per_fw-la imprudentiam_fw-la in_o numero_fw-la erraret_fw-la trecentis_fw-la lapillis_fw-la in_o sinum_fw-la coniectis_fw-la ad_fw-la singulas_fw-la preces_fw-la singulos_fw-la eiecit_fw-la lapillos_fw-la consumptis_fw-la igitur_fw-la lapillis_fw-la constabat_fw-la sibi_fw-la orationes_fw-la lapillis_fw-la numero_fw-la pares_fw-la abs_fw-la se_fw-la expletas_fw-la esse_fw-la which_o example_n of_o so_o great_a a_o saint_n so_o know_v and_o notorious_a it_o notorious_a the_o minister_n answer_v that_o singular_a example_n be_v no_o rule_n for_o ammonius_n be_v solicit_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n cut_v of_o his_o own_o ear_n &_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o imitable_a herein_o so_o neither_o be_v s._n paul_n example_n in_o say_v prayer_n upon_o bead_n to_o be_v follow_v i_o answer_v some_o thing_n be_v such_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n as_o they_o can_v be_v do_v lawful_o and_o with_o out_o sin_n but_o by_o special_a revelation_n as_o the_o kill_n &_o maym_v himself_o in_o which_o kind_a example_n in_o scripture_n or_o else_o where_o relate_v be_v admirable_a not_o imitable_a but_o when_o the_o thing_n use_v by_o some_o singular_a saint_n be_v not_o against_o any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n but_o a_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v do_v without_o special_a revelation_n the_o same_o be_v imitable_a by_o all_o other_o in_o due_a circumstance_n now_o what_o law_n divine_a or_o human_a forbid_v a_o man_n to_o say_v three_o hundred_o prayer_n a_o day_n one_o hundred_o to_o each_o of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n or_o what_o law_n do_v prohibit_v he_o to_o use_v 300._o little_a stone_n or_o bead_n in_o number_v they_o for_o help_v of_o memory_n or_o why_o may_v we_o not_o help_v our_o memory_n in_o number_v our_o devotion_n by_o calculation_n of_o bead_n if_o s._n paul_n example_n be_v pious_a and_o laudable_a if_o to_o say_v prayer_n in_o a_o certain_a number_n upon_o bead_n be_v intrinsical_o evil_a it_o can_v be_v do_v pious_o by_o the_o singular_a instinct_n of_o god_n spirit_n see_v god_n can_v never_o inspire_v man_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v essential_o evil_a if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o itself_o essential_o evil_a why_o shall_v protestant_n forbid_v man_n to_o use_v such_o help_n of_o our_o devotion_n except_o they_o can_v show_v a_o express_a positive_a divine_a law_n in_o scripture_n against_o it_o and_o never_o censure_v by_o any_o father_n may_v more_o than_o abundant_o suffice_v for_o satisfaction_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o no_o more_o moment_n than_o this_o for_o we_o be_v not_o curious_a in_o this_o point_n nor_o do_v require_v of_o any_o man_n that_o he_o say_v his_o prayer_n in_o a_o certain_a number_n so_o that_o he_o may_v not_o say_v more_o or_o less_o as_o his_o devotion_n serve_v he_o the_o sixth_z point_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n your_o excellent_a majesty_n submit_v your_o judgement_n to_o god_n express_a word_n do_v firm_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o most_o venerable_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o doctrine_n do_v natural_o and_o necessary_o infer_v whatsoever_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o presence_n to_o declare_v this_o and_o together_o answer_v a_o objection_n much_o urge_v by_o some_o protestant_n that_o they_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o be_v not_o bind_v by_o this_o to_o believe_v the_o manner_n that_o not_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n we_o must_v note_v that_o man_n be_v bind_v firm_o to_o believe_v the_o manner_n of_o a_o mystery_n reveal_v when_o the_o same_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n thereof_o so_o that_o reject_v the_o manner_n we_o reject_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n this_o be_v evident_a and_o may_v be_v declare_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v so_o unite_v that_o god_n be_v true_o man_n &_o man_n very_o god_n the_o manner_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v ineffable_a and_o incomprehensible_a yet_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v three_o thing_n concern_v it_o which_o if_o we_o deny_v we_o deny_v the_o mystery_n in_o substance_n howsoever_o we_o may_v retain_v the_o same_o in_o word_n first_o that_o this_o union_n be_v not_o only_o metaphorical_a 4._o metaphorical_a non_fw-la affectualis_fw-la unitas_fw-la sed_fw-la secundum_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la synodus_fw-la 5._o generalis_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la constantinop_n 2._o can._n 4._o by_o affection_n as_o two_o person_n that_o be_v great_a friend_n may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v all_o one_o but_o also_o true_a and_o real_a second_o real_a union_n of_o nature_n be_v 5._o be_v qui_fw-la non_fw-la confitetur_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la substantialiter_fw-la vniri_fw-la carni_fw-la anathema_n sit_v synod_n chal._n act_n 5._o synod_n quinta_fw-la general_n can_v 5._o substantial_a and_o not_o accidental_a so_o that_o thereby_o the_o nature_n be_v not_o only_o accidental_o perfect_v by_o receive_v excellent_a participation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n power_n wisdom_n and_o majesty_n but_o also_o substantial_o the_o very_a fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v corporal_o and_o substantial_o in_o he_o three_o that_o this_o substantial_a union_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n so_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n &_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n become_v one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o eutiches_n teach_v but_o 6._o but_o exit_fw-la duabus_fw-la naturis_fw-la secundum_fw-la substantiam_fw-la vnitis_fw-la unum_fw-la &_o eumdem_fw-la christum_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la confitetur_fw-la condennatus_fw-la est_fw-la council_n lateran_n sub_fw-la martin_n 1._o can._n 6._o hypostatical_a whereby_o god_n and_o man_n become_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n these_o particular_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o incarnation_n though_o high_a subtle_a and_o incomprehensible_a to_o reason_n christian_n may_v and_o must_v believe_v because_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n in_o general_a counsel_n though_o the_o vulgar_a be_v not_o bind_v explicit_o to_o know_v they_o in_o this_o sort_n we_o say_v that_o the_o manner_n how_o our_o saviour_n body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n must_v be_v believe_v &_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v as_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o very_a life_n be_v and_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n reveal_v which_o mystery_n in_o substance_n be_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o priest_n minister_v thereof_o demonstrate_v what_o seem_v bread_n may_v true_o say_v thereof_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o suppose_a as_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n i_o infer_v that_o two_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o mystery_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n &_o can_v be_v call_v in_o question_n without_o danger_n of_o misbelief_n first_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n second_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o transubstantiation_n a_o addition_n prove_v the_o catholic_a real_a presence_n according_a to_o the_o literal_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n against_o ministerial_a metaphor_n figure_n and_o shift_n his_o majesty_n in_o question_v only_a transubstantiation_n seem_v to_o suppose_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o
&_o last_o of_o the_o seven_o so_o that_o his_o argument_n be_v nine_o in_o all_o these_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o substance_n of_o all_o his_o disputation_n i_o will_v here_o set_v they_o down_o &_o answer_v they_o one_o by_o one_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v upon_o what_o frivolous_a reason_n these_o man_n be_v move_v to_o reject_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n concern_v the_o high_a mysterye_n of_o faith_n his_o first_o argument_n pag._n 397._o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v remain_v christ_n speech_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n can_v be_v proper_o true_a because_o one_o individual_a substance_n can_v be_v predicate_v of_o another_o proper_o but_o it_o shall_v be_v afterward_o by_o father_n and_o scripture_n prove_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v answer_n you_o will_v prove_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o remain_v in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n ad_fw-la kalendas_fw-la graecas_fw-la the_o mean_a while_n out_o of_o what_o you_o here_o confess_v i_o argue_v against_o you_o you_o grant_v that_o except_o transubstantiation_n be_v maintain_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o literal_a sense_n but_o they_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n for_o on_o these_o word_n the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v ground_n a_o chief_a mystery_n or_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v not_o figurative_a text_n can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n concern_v any_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n of_o faith_n the_o second_o argument_n pag._n 397._o the_o word_n whereby_o the_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v luc._n 22.20_o be_v tropical_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n answer_n first_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a that_o our_o saviour_n deliver_v some_o precept_n article_n or_o sacrament_n shall_v use_v word_n that_o be_v figurative_a and_o exorbitant_a according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n if_o they_o be_v not_o figurative_a nor_o unusual_a but_o ordinary_a plain_a manifest_a perspicuous_a according_a to_o the_o common_a phrase_n and_o vulgar_a manner_n of_o speech_n this_o speech_n this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o if_o it_o be_v figurative_a according_a to_o grammar_n yet_o be_v it_o plain_a easy_a &_o clear_o according_a to_o common_a speech_n for_o no_o man_n hear_v these_o word_n this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n shed_v for_o you_o can_v think_v that_o the_o cup_n and_o not_o the_o blood_n contain_v therein_o be_v shed_v for_o us._n second_o i_o deny_v that_o any_o word_n of_o this_o speech_n this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o be_v figurative_a this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n be_v not_o figurative_a see_v christ_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o true_a cup_n not_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o cup_n and_o the_o thing_n contain_v therein_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o blood_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v also_o true_o and_o proper_o say_v to_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n for_o it_o be_v the_o thing_n require_v by_o the_o new_a testament_n &_o covenant_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o common_o and_o vulgar_o man_n say_v of_o the_o thing_n require_v by_o covenant_n this_o be_v our_o covenant_n final_o the_o cup_n in_o his_o blood_n be_v proper_o say_v to_o be_v shed_v see_v the_o blood_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o shed_v &_o so_o the_o cup_n proper_o shed_v in_o that_o respect_n as_o to_o say_v of_o a_o cup_n of_o wine_n this_o cup_n be_v spill_v in_o the_o wine_n thereof_o be_v not_o figurative_a but_o rather_o a_o speech_n unnecessary_o plain_a the_o three_o argument_n pag._n 397._o if_o the_o word_n be_v take_v proper_o than_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v deliver_v and_o receive_v without_o the_o soul_n and_o deity_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n the_o body_n be_v a_o distinct_a and_o diverse_a thing_n from_o the_o soul_n and_o likewise_o from_o blood_n answer_n thousand_o instance_n may_v be_v bring_v that_o show_n your_o gross_a ignorance_n in_o theology_n who_o thus_o argue_v for_o example_n the_o gospel_n john_n 1.10_o say_v the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n be_v this_o argument_n good_a flesh_n in_o the_o propriety_n of_o speech_n be_v a_o distinct_a and_o diverse_a thing_n from_o blood_n and_o from_o soul_n ergo_fw-la either_o these_o word_n be_v figurative_a and_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n take_v substantial_o flesh_n or_o else_o we_o must_v say_v that_o he_o take_v dead_a flesh_n without_o blood_n &_o soul_n s._n peter_n say_v that_o christ_n do_v bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o body_n upon_o the_o wood_n be_v he_o not_o simple_a that_o will_v argue_v as_o you_o do_v body_n in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n be_v a_o thing_n distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n and_o from_o the_o godhead_n therefore_o either_o the_o word_n be_v figurative_a and_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o christ_n do_v true_o suffer_v in_o body_n or_o else_o we_o must_v say_v that_o his_o body_n without_o soul_n and_o without_o his_o deity_n suffer_v on_o the_o crosse._n not_o so_o for_o though_o the_o body_n be_v a_o thing_n distinct_a and_o diverse_a from_o the_o soul_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n unite_a and_o join_v with_o the_o soul_n when_o the_o person_n live_v and_o so_o the_o body_n of_o a_o live_a person_n can_v be_v give_v except_o the_o soul_n be_v give_v consequent_o or_o by_o concomitancy_n therewith_o ordinary_a philosophy_n may_v have_v teach_v you_o this_o where_o it_o be_v common_o say_v that_o though_o the_o body_n be_v distinct_a from_o the_o soul_n yet_o can_v the_o body_n be_v move_v or_o remoove_v deliver_v and_o receive_v without_o the_o soul_n the_o same_o go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n per_fw-la accidens_fw-la cum_fw-la corpore_fw-la by_o concomitancy_n together_o with_o the_o body_n the_o four_o argument_n pag._n 397._o see_v christ_n as_o saint_n hierome_n saint_n chrysostome_n and_o euthimius_n affirm_v do_v himself_o sacramental_o eat_v and_o drink_v what_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n if_o the_o word_n be_v literal_o understand_v than_o he_o do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o own_o blood_n answer_n you_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a and_o foolish_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n which_o yet_o you_o dare_v not_o utter_v in_o plain_a word_n for_o if_o christ_n as_o you_o affirm_v do_v eat_v what_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n either_o he_o do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n or_o else_o his_o word_n in_o rigour_n be_v false_a whereby_o he_o say_v of_o what_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n hence_o the_o father_n who_o affirm_v that_o christ_n do_v eat_v what_o he_o give_v affirm_v that_o christ_n do_v eat_v what_o he_o give_v his_o apostle_n consequent_o enforce_v by_o the_o evidence_n of_o god_n word_n express_o aver_v that_o he_o do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n as_o saint_n hierome_n ad_fw-la hedib_n q._n 2._o christ_n in_o his_o supper_n be_v the_o eater_n &_o the_o meat_n that_o be_v eat_v saint_n chrysostome_n homil_n 83._o in_o matth._n that_o the_o apostle_n may_v not_o fear_v to_o do_v the_o same_o christ_n himself_o first_o drink_v his_o own_o blood_n yea_o s._n augustine_n contion_n 1._o in_o psalm_n 33._o say_v that_o christ_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n carry_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n secundum_fw-la literam_fw-la according_a to_o the_o letter_n which_o david_n neither_o do_v nor_o possible_o can_v do_v the_o five_o argument_n pag._n 398._o if_o the_o word_n be_v understand_v literal_o than_o christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n his_o passable_a and_o mortal_a body_n but_o i_o trow_v no_o jesuit_n will_v maintain_v that_o a_o body_n mortal_a and_o passable_a can_v be_v in_o many_o host_n or_o mouth_n at_o once_o nor_o can_v the_o same_o be_v corporal_o eat_v without_o sensible_a touch_v answer_n you_o may_v true_o have_v say_v i_o trow_v no_o caluinist_n will_v believe_v that_o a_o mortal_a and_o passable_a body_n can_v be_v in_o two_o host_n or_o mouth_n at_o once_o let_v the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v it_o never_o so_o express_o and_o even_o as_o express_o as_o these_o word_n import_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o many_o unto_o death_n which_o shall_v be_v break_v for_o you_o on_o the_o crosse._n if_o christ_n give_v his_o body_n that_o be_v to_o suffer_v and_o die_v he_o give_v his_o body_n that_o be_v then_o passable_a &_o mortal_a in_o many_o host_n at_o once_o unto_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o twelve_o now_o this_o be_v the_o plain_n express_v and_o literal_a truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o
a_o thing_n be_v fundamental_o compose_v hence_o fire_n air_n water_n earth_n as_o also_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o alphabet_n be_v term_v element_n because_o both_o be_v primordiall_a simples_n and_o substantial_a part_n the_o one_o of_o mix_a substance_n the_o other_o of_o word_n and_o sentence_n now_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o also_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v corporal_a substance_n the_o primordiall_a simples_n and_o substantial_a principle_n whereof_o their_o nature_n be_v original_o compose_v be_v substantial_a matter_n &_o form_n as_o every_o philosopher_n know_v ergo_fw-la transelementation_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n do_v import_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n according_a to_o their_o element_n that_o be_v matter_n &_o form_n be_v not_o this_o transubstantiation_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v because_o in_o transelementation_n matter_n do_v no_o more_o remain_v then_o in_o transubstantiation_n &_o so_o your_o devise_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o be_v false_a for_o as_o when_o transelementation_n be_v partial_a that_o be_v according_a to_o form_v only_o the_o matter_n remain_v so_o likewise_o in_o transubstantiation_n for_o example_n when_o wood_n be_v turn_v into_o fire_n the_o form_n be_v destroy_v the_o matter_n remain_v as_o wood_n by_o this_o change_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v transelemented_a into_o fire_n because_o it_o be_v change_v into_o fire_n according_a to_o the_o form_n which_o be_v one_o element_n of_o wood_n so_o likewise_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v transubstantiate_v into_o fire_n because_o it_o be_v change_v into_o fire_n according_a to_o the_o form_n which_o be_v one_o part_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o wood_n though_o christian_n do_v not_o use_v so_o to_o speak_v because_o aswell_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d by_o the_o grecian_a church_n as_o the_o word_n transubstantiation_n by_o the_o latin_a be_v consecrate_v to_o signify_v the_o substantial_a change_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v total_a according_a to_o both_o element_n &_o substantial_a part_n three_o i_o thus_o argue_v the_o minister_n grant_v that_o transelementation_n do_v import_v a_o essential_a change_n or_o a_o change_n according_a to_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n but_o this_o can_v be_v according_a to_o the_o essential_a form_n only_o &_o not_o also_o according_a to_o the_o essential_a matter_n of_o bread_n else_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v make_v big_a by_o the_o matter_n of_o bread_n change_v into_o it_o as_o we_o see_v the_o fire_n to_o be_v make_v big_a by_o the_o matter_n of_o wood_n remain_v after_o the_o conversion_n thereof_o into_o fire_n ergo_fw-la see_v the_o minister_n grant_v that_o transelementation_n import_v a_o essential_a change_n he_o must_v if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v ridiculous_o absurd_a consequent_o grant_v that_o this_o change_n be_v to_o tall_a else_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v augment_v by_o the_o material_a addition_n of_o bread_n unto_o it_o four_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o father_n appropriation_n of_o this_o word_n unto_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n for_o do_v not_o transelementation_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n import_v a_o substantial_a change_n but_o only_o a_o accidental_a mystical_a &_o significative_a conversion_n of_o they_o i_o ask_v first_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n be_v transelemented_a into_o christ_n blood_n as_o well_o as_o they_o say_v that_o wine_n be_v transelemented_a into_o his_o blood_n for_o thus_o they_o may_v have_v speak_v of_o baptism_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o eucharist_n have_v they_o be_v of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n which_o be_v that_o water_n be_v mystical_o and_o significative_o make_v christ_n blood_n in_o baptism_n as_o much_o as_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n second_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o our_o body_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v transelemented_a into_o christ_n body_n but_o only_o as_o the_o minister_n cite_v s._n nissen_n orat_fw-la catechist_n c._n 34._o transmutantur_fw-la they_o be_v transmute_v why_o this_o but_o because_o transmutation_n be_v a_o general_n term_n signifyes_n any_o mutation_n whether_o substantial_a or_o accidental_a whereas_o transelementation_n can_v import_v but_o a_o substantial_a change_n final_o why_o do_v the_o father_n never_o say_v that_o man_n soul_n be_v by_o grace_n &_o charity_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n into_o who_o the_o same_o be_v mystical_o change_v theophilact_n indeed_o cite_v by_o the_o minister_n in_o joan._n c._n 6._o v._n 56._o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o a_o manner_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n as_o he_o may_v no_o less_o true_o have_v say_v in_o a_o manner_n transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n but_o that_o man_n be_v by_o grace_n transelemented_a into_o christ_n they_o never_o say_v which_o be_v manifest_a sign_n that_o the_o father_n understand_v by_o transelementation_n according_a to_o the_o proper_a &_o natural_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n a_o substantial_a conversion_n &_o not_o only_o a_o accidental_a much_o less_o a_o mere_a mystical_a change_n iii_o s._n cyrill_n say_v the_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n convert_v bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o own_o flesh_n understand_v not_o popish_a transubstantiation_n but_o mystical_a &_o sacramental_a conversion_n to_o wit_n conversion_n of_o signification_n use_n &_o operation_n for_o he_o speak_v of_o bread_n &_o wine_n according_a to_o their_o whole_a nature_n contain_v substance_n &_o accident_n but_o the_o accident_n be_v only_o mystical_o convert_v into_o christ_n his_o body_n answer_n this_o mist_n which_o the_o minister_n will_v cast_v upon_o this_o matter_n by_o the_o term_n of_o mystical_a conversion_n serve_v only_o to_o catch_v woodcock_n for_o every_o man_n of_o judgement_n may_v present_o see_v that_o this_o sense_n can_v stand_v with_o the_o word_n of_o s._n cyrill_n for_o s._n cyrill_n say_v that_o do_v man_n see_v and_o feel_v what_o be_v inward_o do_v in_o consecrate_a bread_n &_o wine_n man_n shall_v find_v horror_n to_o feed_v thereon_o because_o they_o shall_v see_v and_o feel_v that_o they_o eat_v and_o drink_v flesh_n &_o blood_n hence_o that_o this_o may_v not_o be_v perceave_v he_o say_v the_o conversion_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v do_v inward_o by_o christ_n penetrative_a power_n convert_n they_o into_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o do_v man_n see_v what_o be_v inward_o do_v in_o bread_n &_o wine_n by_o the_o protestant_n significative_a conversion_n they_o will_v feel_v no_o horror_n for_o in_o their_o tenet_n no_o change_n at_o all_o be_v make_v inward_o in_o bread_n but_o the_o whole_a outward_a substance_n be_v assume_v as_o a_o instrument_n to_o sanctify_v the_o soul_n if_o a_o christian_a shall_v see_v this_o conversion_n of_o use_n &_o operation_n shall_v he_o see_v i_o say_v that_o bread_n be_v elevate_v to_o produce_v sanctify_v grace_n in_o his_o soul_n why_o shall_v he_o feel_v horror_n to_o feed_v thereon_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o only_a wilfulness_n against_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n but_o also_o folly_n to_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o s._n cyrill_n of_o mere_a mystical_a &_o significative_a change_n four_o unto_o this_o testimony_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n the_o minister_n repli_v in_o these_o word_n the_o father_n say_v not_o that_o nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n be_v leave_v but_o the_o clean_a the_o contrary_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n go_v away_o &_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v false_o translate_v for_o they_o be_v not_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o substance_n but_o be_v coabsume_v with_o the_o substance_n also_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o consume_v by_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o many_o schoolman_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o external_a element_n pass_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o receiver_n &_o be_v consume_v or_o unite_v to_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o receiver_n answer_n this_o your_o reply_n touch_v two_o point_n first_o the_o translation_n second_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n i_o will_v discover_v your_o vanity_n about_o both_o as_o concern_v the_o first_o you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o wrangler_n and_o give_v unto_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d condemn_v by_o s._n paul_n labour_v to_o make_v those_o say_n to_o be_v dissonant_n and_o contrary_n betwixt_o which_o there_o be_v not_o any_o difference_n in_o respect_n of_o sense_n what_o disagreement_n in_o respect_n of_o sense_n be_v there_o between_o these_o two_o sentence_n which_o you_o say_v be_v contrary_a when_o wax_n be_v put_v into_o the_o fire_n nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n thereof_o be_v
this_o mystery_n not_o accompany_v with_o many_o seem_a absurditye_n &_o repugnance_n against_o sense_n particular_o these_o four_o first_o that_o a_o body_n as_o big_a as_o our_o saviour_n remain_v still_o true_o corpulent_a in_o itself_o shall_v be_v contain_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o round_a host_n scarce_o a_o inch_n long_a and_o broad_a second_o that_o a_o body_n so_o glorious_a shall_v be_v combine_v unto_o corruptible_a element_n and_o so_o make_v subject_a unto_o the_o indignity_n and_o obscenitye_n that_o may_v befall_v unto_o they_o three_o that_o the_o body_n may_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n in_o innumerable_a place_n at_o once_o four_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v convert_v into_o christ_n body_n the_o sole_a accident_n remain_v by_o themselves_o perform_v the_o whole_a office_n of_o substance_n no_o less_o then_o if_o it_o be_v present_a even_o to_o the_o nutrition_n of_o man_n body_n these_o difficultye_n so_o scandalize_v protestant_n that_o some_o condemn_v transubstantiation_n as_o impossible_a yea_o as_o 3._o as_o field_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 3._o absurd_a ridiculous_a barbarous_a other_o profess_v they_o can_v subdue_v their_o understanding_n to_o believe_v it_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o give_v full_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o point_n i_o set_v down_o this_o proposition_n that_o these_o seem_a absurditye_n shall_v not_o avert_v but_o rather_o incline_v a_o true_a christian_a mind_n to_o believe_v this_o mystery_n in_o proof_n whereof_o i_o present_v unto_o your_o majesty_n these_o three_o consideration_n they_o consideration_n the_o minister_n here_o say_v that_o this_o long_a tract_n about_o god_n omnipotency_n be_v impertinent_a because_o protestant_n deny_v not_o god_n omnipotency_n but_o this_o cavil_v be_v refute_v in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 3_o §._o 3._o where_o it_o be_v show_v that_o to_o deny_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n about_o the_o mysterye_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v infidelity_n now_o protestant_n grant_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n to_o be_v a_o chief_a mystery_n of_o faith_n &_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n about_o the_o same_o wherefore_o this_o tract_n about_o the_o divine_a omnipotency_n be_v pertinent_o bring_v against_o they_o the_o first_o consideration_n the_o first_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o supposal_n of_o two_o thing_n most_o certain_a first_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n preach_v unto_o pagan_n jew_n and_o other_o infidel_n the_o rest_n of_o christian_a mysterye_n as_o the_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n do_v most_o careful_o keep_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v from_o their_o knowledge_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n yea_o catechuman_n and_o novice_n be_v not_o before_o baptism_n full_o teach_v or_o instruct_v therein_o second_o the_o reason_n move_v the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v careful_a in_o this_o point_n be_v least_o catechuman_n &_o infidel_n be_v full_o acquaint_v with_o the_o whole_a mystery_n the_o one_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v &_o the_o other_o mock_v thereat_o hence_o it_o be_v account_v such_o a_o heinous_a offence_n that_o christian_n shall_v discover_v unto_o infidel_n or_o dispute_v about_o the_o difficultye_n thereof_o in_o their_o presence_n the_o council_n 2._o council_n council_n alexand._n apud_fw-la athanas._n apolog._n 2._o of_o alexandria_n relate_v the_o crime_n of_o arrian_n number_v this_o as_o one_o of_o the_o great_a they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a in_o public_a and_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o a_o scaffold_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o mysterye_n before_o catechuman_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o before_o pagan_n and_o a_o little_a after_o it_o 2._o it_o epist._n julij_fw-la apud_fw-la athanas_n apol._n 2._o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o publish_v the_o mysterye_n before_o they_o that_o be_v not_o initiate_v for_o fear_v pagan_n out_o of_o ignorance_n mock_v and_o catechuman_n enter_v into_o curiosity_n be_v scandalize_v and_o again_o before_o catechuman_n &_o which_o be_v more_o before_o jew_n &_o pagan_n blaspheme_v christianity_n they_o handle_v a_o question_n about_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n saint_n ambrose_n 1._o ambrose_n ambros._n de_fw-fr myster_n initian_n c._n 1._o say_v to_o declare_v the_o mysterye_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v catechuman_n be_v no_o tradition_n but_o prodition_n see_v by_o such_o declaration_n danger_n be_v incur_v lest_o they_o be_v diwlge_v unto_o infidel_n that_o will_v scoff_n at_o they_o this_o suppose_a i_o infer_v that_o the_o seem_a absurdity_n of_o the_o catholic_a real_a presence_n shall_v encourage_v a_o true_a christian_a mind_n to_o believe_v it_o for_o a_o true_a christian_a desire_n to_o believe_v and_o firm_o cleave_v unto_o the_o real_a presence_n that_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o this_o be_v a_o real_a presence_n accompany_v with_o many_o seem_v gross_a absurdity_n that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o hope_n to_o satisfy_v infidel_n therein_o or_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o blaspheme_v but_o by_o conceal_v the_o mystery_n from_o they_o and_o consequent_o they_o hold_v the_o catholic_a not_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n the_o protestant_n conceal_v protestant_n the_o minister_n pag._n 442._o lin_v 12._o say_v that_o protestant_n hold_v the_o element_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n to_o remain_v to_o be_v instrument_n of_o our_o conjunction_n by_o grace_n unto_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o mystery_n incomprehensible_a answer_n first_o protestant_n do_v not_o hold_v the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v proper_a instrument_n infuse_v grace_n into_o man_n soul_n but_o that_o man_n be_v iustify_v by_o their_o faith_n only_o &_o that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o mere_a sign_n and_o seal_v thereof_o second_o though_o sacramental_a influence_n of_o grace_n into_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o thing_n supernatural_a yet_o no_o mystery_n of_o extraordinary_a difficulty_n to_o be_v believe_v nor_o absurd_a unto_o sense_n for_o this_o be_v no_o more_o they_o that_o upon_o our_o eat_n and_o drink_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n body_n break_v &_o of_o his_o blood_n shed_v on_o the_o cross_n god_n infuse_v soule-nourishing_a grace_n into_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n now_o what_o difficulty_n to_o believe_v this_o or_o what_o seem_a absurdity_n therein_o this_o be_v no_o great_a mystery_n then_o that_o upon_o the_o wash_n of_o the_o body_n with_o the_o element_n of_o water_n god_n inward_o wash_v the_o soul_n with_o grace_n wherefore_o see_v protestant_n can_v find_v in_o their_o eucharist_n no_o mystery_n more_o hard_a &_o seem_o absurd_a they_o in_o baptism_n doubtless_o it_o be_v not_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n conceal_v from_o infidel_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o seem_a absurdity_n and_o immanity_n thereof_o unto_o carnal_a imagination_n whereas_o baptism_n be_v not_o conceive_v to_o be_v of_o that_o seem_a absurdity_n nor_o conceal_v doctrine_n that_o make_v christ_n body_n present_v spiritual_o by_o faith_n unto_o the_o devout_a receiver_n that_o communicate_v think_v sweet_o of_o christ_n passion_n and_o death_n contain_v no_o mystery_n to_o be_v conceal_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o seem_a absurditye_n yea_o the_o father_n do_v not_o fear_v to_o declare_v to_o catechuman_n this_o sacrament_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v commemorative_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o passion_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o treatise_n of_o saint_n augustine_n upon_o s._n john_n make_v before_o catechuman_n out_o of_o which_o treatise_n protestant_n for_o their_o mere_a commemorative_n presence_n allege_v many_o sentence_n to_o little_a purpose_n for_o he_o there_o explicate_v spiritual_a manducation_n by_o faith_n and_o he_o exclude_v the_o gross_a imagination_n of_o eat_v christ_n body_n in_o his_o proper_a shape_n tear_v it_o in_o piece_n with_o the_o tooth_n but_o deny_v not_o yea_o rather_o insinuate_v another_o kind_n of_o spiritual_a manducation_n not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o by_o real_a sumption_n though_o to_o conceal_v the_o mystery_n from_o catechuman_n he_o speak_v not_o so_o clear_o thereof_o wherefore_o as_o the_o palmtree_n the_o heavy_a the_o weight_n be_v that_o be_v lay_v upon_o it_o the_o more_o it_o rise_v upward_o as_o it_o be_v joy_v in_o difficultye_n so_o a_o true_a catholic_a christian_n feeling_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n many_o seem_a absurditye_n that_o press_v carnal_a imagination_n to_o the_o ground_n grow_v thereby_o more_o strong_a to_o believe_v it_o embrace_v these_o difficultye_n as_o manifest_a sign_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o protestant_n find_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n by_o faith_n to_o be_v devoid_a of_o such_o difficulty_n may_v by_o the_o very_a lightness_n thereof_o suspect_v it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o father_n conceal_v from_o
there_o may_v be_v great_a merit_n and_o excellent_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n though_o which_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v false_a yet_o in_o believe_v it_o we_o shall_v not_o fall_v into_o any_o damnable_a error_n for_o although_o we_o suppose_v this_o unpossible_a case_n yet_o what_o can_v be_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n which_o we_o may_v not_o defend_v and_o justify_v by_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o equity_n and_o reason_n if_o we_o be_v accuse_v that_o we_o take_v bread_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n adore_v the_o same_o as_o god_n so_o commit_v idolatry_n we_o may_v defend_v that_o both_o for_o soul_n and_o body_n we_o be_v innocent_a herein_o for_o see_v the_o body_n be_v not_o make_v guilty_a but_o by_o a_o guilty_a mind_n even_o our_o body_n may_v plead_v not_o guilty_a see_v our_o mind_n our_o thought_n our_o devotion_n be_v total_o refer_v unto_o christ_n who_o we_o true_o apprehend_v by_o faith_n as_o veil_v with_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o so_o may_v repel_v the_o reproach_n of_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d bread-worshipper_n with_o say_v quae_fw-la vovit_fw-la mens_fw-la est_fw-la pani_fw-la nil_fw-la vovimus_fw-la illâ_fw-la neither_o do_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n upon_o slight_a reason_n or_o move_v by_o the_o fancy_n of_o our_o own_o head_n but_o contrary_a to_o our_o fancy_n out_o of_o reverence_n to_o the_o define_v the_o the_o minister_n here_o contradict_v himself_o say_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o involue_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n and_o further_o that_o the_o same_o be_v never_o define_v in_o general_n counsel_n for_o as_o the_o arian_n will_v allow_v no_o council_n to_o be_v lawful_a which_o condemn_v arius_n so_o with_o these_o man_n no_o council_n be_v lawful_a upon_o which_o john_n caluin_n will_v not_o bestow_v his_o blessing_n otherwise_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o lateran_n council_n under_o innocent_a the_o three_o and_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a celebrate_v above_o eight_o hundred_o year_n ago_o where_o the_o substantive_a real_a presence_n be_v define_v and_o the_o figurative_a condemn_v be_v lawful_a &_o general_a in_o which_o both_o the_o latin_a and_o grecian_a church_n do_v concur_v to_o define_v express_a word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n a_o sense_n declare_v by_o most_o ancient_a father_n define_v by_o many_o general_n counsel_n deliver_v by_o full_a consent_n of_o our_o ancestor_n so_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n for_o many_o age_n without_o any_o know_a beginning_n final_o confirm_v with_o the_o most_o credible_a &_o constant_a report_n of_o innumerable_a mores_n innumerable_a the_o minister_n say_v that_o these_o miracle_n be_v but_o the_o lie_v of_o friar_n which_o he_o prove_v by_o a_o jest_n that_o be_v rife_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o wickliffift_n est_fw-la frater_fw-la ergo_fw-la mendax_fw-la answer_n the_o miracle_n do_v in_o proof_n of_o the_o corporal_n and_o substantial_a permanent_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v relate_v by_o most_o ancient_a father_n and_o writer_n of_o which_o many_o whole_a town_n city_n and_o country_n have_v be_v eye_n witness_n as_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o question_v they_o these_o may_v be_v read_v in_o joannes_n garetius_n who_o have_v gather_v they_o together_o as_o also_o in_o judocus_n coccius_n the_o proverb_n he_o be_v friar_n ergo_fw-la a_o liar_n be_v true_a of_o such_o friar_n as_o martin_n luther_n bucer_n peter_n martyr_n friar_n barnes_n and_o the_o like_a founder_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o five_o gospel_n and_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v look_v into_o without_o passion_n this_o inference_n est_fw-fr minister_n ergo_fw-la mendax_fw-la will_v seem_v more_o justifiable_a even_o in_o caluins_n judgement_n who_o say_v that_o most_o of_o they_o that_o show_v most_o zeal_n be_v full_a of_o falsehood_n fraud_n &_o lie_v hierom_n zanchius_n a_o famous_a protestant_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o book_n contra_fw-la arianum_n anonymun_n say_v of_o minister_n that_o even_o they_o who_o be_v term_v pillar_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n impudent_a lie_a companion_n that_o outface_v the_o truth_n every_o way_n thereupon_o exclaym_v o_o tempora_fw-la o_o mores_n most_o evident_a miracle_n can_v a_o christian_a believe_v any_o point_n of_o religion_n upon_o sure_a ground_n and_o if_o god_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v condemn_v none_o but_o such_o as_o live_n in_o this_o world_n wrong_v he_o in_o his_o honour_n why_o shall_v catholic_n fear_v any_o hard_a sentence_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o prompt_a credulity_n of_o transubstantiation_n that_o be_v of_o god_n word_n take_v in_o the_o plain_a proper_a sense_n be_v it_o any_o injury_n to_o his_o verity_n that_o they_o deny_v their_o sense_n correct_v their_o imagination_n reform_v their_o discourse_n abnegate_n their_o judgment_n rather_o than_o not_o to_o believe_v what_o to_o they_o seem_v his_o word_n be_v it_o injury_n to_o his_o power_n to_o be_v persuade_v that_o he_o can_v do_v thing_n incomprehensible_a without_o number_n put_v the_o same_o body_n in_o innumerable_a place_n at_o once_o make_v a_o body_n occupy_v no_o place_n &_o yet_o remain_v a_o quantitative_a substance_n in_o itself_o be_v it_o injury_n to_o his_o charity_n to_o think_v that_o love_n unto_o man_n make_v he_o unite_v himself_o real_o and_o substantial_o with_o they_o &_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v incarnate_a anew_o in_o every_o particular_a faithful_a man_n enter_v real_o into_o their_o body_n to_o signify_v efficacious_o his_o inward_a conjunction_n by_o spirit_n unto_o their_o soul_n final_o be_v it_o any_o injury_n to_o his_o wisdom_n to_o believe_v that_o to_o satisfy_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n that_o will_v have_v he_o ever_o in_o heaven_n sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o ardency_n of_o his_o own_o affection_n unto_o man_n desire_v to_o be_v perpetual_o with_o they_o he_o invent_v a_o manner_n how_o still_o remain_v glorious_a in_o heaven_n he_o may_v also_o be_v continual_o on_o earth_n with_o his_o church_n secret_o not_o to_o take_v from_o they_o the_o merit_n of_o faith_n yet_o to_o afford_v full_a satisfaction_n to_o his_o own_o love_n real_o by_o continual_a personal_a presence_n and_o most_o intime_fw-la conjunction_n with_o they_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o import_v they_o that_o think_v transubstantiation_n impossible_a or_o that_o god_n can_v put_v the_o same_o body_n in_o different_a place_n at_o once_o to_o consider_v if_o they_o err_v easy_o it_o be_v for_o man_n to_o err_v that_o with_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o understanding_n measure_v the_o power_n of_o god_n how_o dangerous_a &_o inexcusable_a their_o error_n will_v prove_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o give_v unto_o their_o omnipotent_a maker_n a_o final_a account_n particular_o of_o this_o doctrine_n so_o much_o derogate_a from_o he_o let_v they_o think_v how_o they_o will_v answer_v if_o god_n lie_v to_o their_o charge_n the_o neglect_n of_o that_o most_o prudent_a &_o reasonable_a advice_n which_o s._n chrysostome_n homil._n 83._o in_o mat._n give_o let_v we_o believe_v god_n say_v he_o let_v we_o not_o resist_v his_o word_n though_o the_o same_o seem_v absurd_a unto_o our_o cogitation_n &_o sense_n for_o his_o speech_n do_v surpass_v our_o reason_n and_o sense_n his_o word_n can_v deceive_v we_o but_o our_o sense_n be_v deceive_v easy_o and_o often_o how_o will_v they_o reply_v if_o they_o be_v press_v with_o the_o interrogatory_n which_o s._n cyrill_n l._n 12._o in_o joan._n make_v unto_o such_o unbeliever_n if_o thou_o can_v not_o comprehend_v the_o divine_a operation_n of_o god_n why_o do_v thou_o not_o accuse_v the_o imbecility_n of_o man_n wit_n rather_o than_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n or_o how_o dispute_v &_o propose_v so_o many_o argument_n against_o god_n power_n reject_v or_o question_v the_o same_o because_o they_o can_v not_o understand_v it_o never_o call_v they_o to_o mind_n the_o say_n 11._o say_n august_n lib._n 12._o the_o civit_n c._n 11._o of_o saint_n augustine_n ecce_fw-la quibus_fw-la argumentis_fw-la divinae_fw-la omnipotentiae_fw-la humana_fw-la contradicit_fw-la infirmitas_fw-la quam_fw-la possidet_fw-la vanitas_fw-la the_o seven_o point_n communion_n kind_n communion_n note_v that_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v both_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o a_o sacrament_n a_o sacrifice_n as_o offer_v unto_o god_n for_o thansgiving_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n a_o sacrament_n as_o receive_v by_o man_n for_o the_o food_n &_o sanctification_n of_o their_o soul_n it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n because_o a_o lively_a and_o express_a representation_n of_o christ_n bloody_a sacrifice_n on_o the_o crosse._n it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n because_o represent_v &_o exhibit_v christ_n jesus_n as_o the_o full_a and_o all-sufficient_a
a_o act_n of_o obedience_n unto_o christ_n precept_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o but_o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n 1._o sam._n 15._o 22._o his_o argument_n suppose_v without_o proof_n what_o the_o jesuit_n have_v show_v to_o be_v most_o false_a and_o so_o may_v be_v with_o more_o truth_n turn_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n be_v a_o act_n of_o obedience_n unto_o the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n but_o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n therefore_o more_o spiritual_a profit_n and_o merit_n be_v get_v by_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o christ_n his_o precept_n §._o 4._o although_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n pertain_v not_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o if_o christ_n do_v special_o command_v the_o same_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o that_o observance_n and_o shall_v by_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_a sin_n not_o against_o his_o sacrament_n and_o institution_n but_o against_o a_o special_a divine_a precept_n hence_o we_o may_v probable_o infer_v that_o christ_n give_v no_o special_a precept_n thereof_o because_o christ_n have_v command_v no_o more_o concern_v the_o use_n of_o the_o eucharist_n than_o what_o by_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o institution_n &_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v bind_v unto_o leave_v accidental_a circumstance_n belong_v thereunto_o to_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o s._n augustin_n note_v say_v 118._o say_v augustin_n ep_v 118._o our_o lord_n do_v not_o appoint_v in_o what_o order_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v take_v afterward_o but_o leave_v authority_n to_o make_v such_o appointment_n unto_o his_o apostle_n by_o who_o he_o be_v to_o dispose_v and_o order_v his_o church_n so_o clear_o do_v s._n augustine_n speak_v that_o christ_n give_v no_o commandment_n to_o his_o church_n concern_v the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n beside_o such_o as_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o which_o kind_a communion_n under_o both_o kind_n can_v be_v as_o have_v be_v prove_v which_o will_v further_o appear_v by_o ponder_v the_o place_n allege_v to_o prove_v a_o precept_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o do_v no_o way_n infer_v a_o precept_n of_o both_o kind_n first_o because_o he_o say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o absolute_o only_a of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n of_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n not_o absolute_o but_o conditional_o do_v this_o as_o often_o as_o you_o drink_v in_o memory_n of_o i_o that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n may_v not_o have_v any_o the_o least_o plausible_a show_n to_o complain_v of_o she_o neglect_v god_n precept_n 5._o precept_n the_o minister_n in_o this_o place_n be_v very_o bitter_a term_v the_o jesuit_n vermine_n infatuate_v romanist_n and_o the_o like_a but_o in_o lieu_n of_o answer_v his_o argument_n he_o confirm_v the_o same_o as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 4._o §._o 5._o for_o this_o precept_n do_v this_o be_v the_o only_a precept_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n as_o shall_v afterward_o appear_v and_o give_v absolute_o of_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n conditional_o of_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n there_o be_v no_o colour_n to_o accuse_v the_o church_n of_o do_v against_o christ_n precept_n by_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n second_o suppose_v christ_n speak_v these_o imperative_a word_n do_v this_o after_o the_o give_v of_o the_o cup_n yet_o be_v they_o to_o be_v understand_v with_o this_o restriction_n do_v this_o that_o be_v all_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o essence_n and_o substance_n of_o this_o action_n in_o memory_n of_o i_o for_o if_o we_o extend_v the_o precept_n do_v this_o further_o than_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o action_n unto_o the_o accidentary_a circumstance_n thereof_o in_o which_o christ_n do_v then_o institute_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n many_o absurditye_n will_v follow_v for_o by_o this_o rule_n we_o must_v always_o celebrate_v and_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n after_o supper_n as_o christ_n do_v special_o see_v this_o circumstance_n of_o after_o supper_n be_v choose_v of_o christ_n as_o be_v very_o proper_a &_o mysterious_a for_o thereby_o be_v signify_v that_o this_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o succeed_v the_o paschall_n lamb_n that_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o evening_n the_o sacrifice_n whereof_o the_o royal_a prophet_n say_v 2._o say_v psal._n 140._o v._o 2._o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n elevatio_fw-la manuum_fw-la mearum_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la vespertinum_fw-la the_o sacrifice_n which_o institute_v in_o the_o evening_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o continue_v until_o the_o end_n thereof_o we_o shall_v also_o by_o this_o rule_n be_v bind_v still_o to_o celebrate_v in_o azime_n that_o be_v unlevened_a bread_n in_o which_o christ_n do_v celebrate_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n say_v do_v this_o which_o circumstance_n be_v also_o mystical_a and_o signifyes_n the_o purity_n of_o our_o saviour_n virginal_a body_n &_o person_n which_o be_v without_o any_o leaven_n of_o sin_n and_o beside_o the_o priest_n may_v not_o give_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o any_o but_o such_o who_o foot_n he_o have_v wash_v afore_o see_v christ_n give_v the_o eucharist_n with_o this_o preparative_n circumstance_n which_o doubtless_o be_v very_o pertinent_a and_o mysterious_a to_o signify_v with_o what_o purity_n of_o conscience_n man_n ought_v to_o approach_v unto_o the_o sacred_a table_n if_o to_o bind_v man_n to_o observe_v these_o circumstance_n of_o our_o saviour_n action_n though_o mysterious_a and_o sacramental_a be_v absurd_a as_o without_o doubt_v it_o be_v most_o absurd_a than_o we_o must_v not_o extend_v the_o precept_n do_v this_o to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o christ_n action_n but_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o precept_n do_v this_o only_o include_v the_o do_v of_o that_o which_o pertain_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o not_o to_o the_o give_v of_o both_o kind_n the_o substance_n thereof_o be_v entire_o in_o one_o only_a kind_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v 2._o prove_v the_o minister_n ignorance_n and_o simplicity_n in_o answer_v these_o argument_n be_v discover_v in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 1_o §._o 2._o the_o second_o text_n much_o urge_v for_o the_o give_v of_o the_o cup_n unto_o all_o man_n be_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la wherein_o some_o note_n our_o saviour_n providence_n say_v that_o he_o foresee_v that_o some_o will_v take_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o laity_n grant_v they_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n say_v of_o the_o cup_n bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la but_o not_o of_o bread_n manducate_v ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la i_o answer_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v plain_a drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o but_o the_o difficulty_n be_v to_o who_o they_o be_v speak_v &_o who_o be_v those_o all_o luther_n will_v have_v all_o man_n for_o who_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v shed_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v shed_v for_o all_o man_n even_o infidel_n jew_n turk_n infant_n the_o cup_n also_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o all_o these_o which_o to_o say_v be_v very_o absurd_a other_o restrain_v the_o word_n all_o to_o the_o faithful_a come_v to_o the_o year_n of_o discretion_n who_o must_v drink_v of_o the_o cup_n all_o of_o they_o but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o they_o that_o be_v by_o nature_n abstemij_fw-la who_o can_v endure_v the_o taste_n of_o any_o wine_n yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v excuse_v from_o the_o sacrament_n wherefore_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v unto_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o they_o all_o only_a and_o though_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o catholics_n to_o say_v it_o and_o put_v their_o adversaries_n to_z prove_v their_o pretend_a precept_n which_o they_o call_v of_o the_o eternal_a king_n for_o the_o cup_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v clear_o convince_v the_o contrary_a good_a reason_n the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n define_v by_o counsel_n shall_v stand_v yet_o ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la we_o can_v very_o probable_o show_v out_o of_o the_o sacred_a text_n that_o the_o particle_n all_o concern_v all_o the_o apostle_n only_o first_o what_o one_o evangelist_n mat._n 26.27_o say_v be_v command_v unto_o all_o bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o another_o relate_v to_o have_v be_v answerable_o perform_v by_o they_o all_o matth._n 14.23_o biberunt_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la omnes_fw-la all_o drink_v thereof_o but_o the_o second_o all_o be_v restrain_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o
his_o four_o argument_n wherein_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o make_v priest_n by_o the_o word_n do_v this_o for_o suppose_v they_o be_v not_o make_v priest_n by_o that_o speech_n how_o will_v he_o thence_o conclude_v that_o the_o word_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o be_v not_o speak_v personal_o unto_o the_o twelve_o command_v they_o to_o drink_v all_o of_o the_o same_o individual_a cupp_n beside_o in_o the_o two_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o apostle_n be_v not_o make_v priest_n by_o the_o word_n do_v this_o he_o show_v intolerable_a ignorance_n the_o first_o be_v what_o force_n be_v there_o in_o these_o word_n do_v this_o to_o conclude_v priestly_a ordination_n answer_n be_v you_o a_o doctor_n and_o do_v not_o know_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o almighty_a have_v force_n to_o give_v man_n power_n commission_z authority_n to_o do_v what_o he_o do_v command_v they_o to_o do_v christ_n by_o the_o word_n do_v this_o command_v the_o apostle_n to_o do_v what_o he_o have_v do_v that_o be_v to_o consecrate_v bread_n and_o wine_n into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o receive_v and_o consume_v the_o same_o to_o give_v they_o to_o the_o faithful_a ergo_fw-la by_o say_v do_v this_o he_o give_v they_o power_n commission_n authority_n not_o only_o to_o receive_v themselves_o but_o also_o to_o consecrate_v and_o give_v unto_o other_o his_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v the_o power_n and_o office_n of_o priesthood_n second_o if_o say_v you_o do_v this_o prove_v priesthood_n then_o lay_v man_n be_v priest_n when_o the_o word_n do_v this_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o in_o part_n or_o respective_o answer_n do_v not_o you_o feel_v how_o you_o bewray_v the_o weakness_n and_o vanity_n of_o your_o argument_n in_o your_o very_a proposition_n thereof_o you_o say_v the_o word_n do_v this_o be_v speak_v unto_o lay_a man_n but_o in_o part_n that_o be_v they_o command_v they_o to_o receive_v but_o not_o to_o consecrate_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o other_o but_o the_o power_n or_o commission_n only_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o priesthood_n but_o the_o commission_n to_o consecrate_v &_o administer_v the_o same_o unto_o other_o therefore_o the_o word_n do_v this_o do_v not_o make_v they_o priest_n to_o who_o in_o part_n &_o respective_o but_o to_o who_o they_o be_v speak_v absolute_o &_o in_o the_o full_a sense_n another_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n some_o urge_v to_o prove_v that_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v command_v to_o wit_n the_o famous_a place_n out_o of_o s._n john_n 6.59_o john_n joan._n 6.59_o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n &_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o where_o our_o saviour_n under_o the_o penalty_n of_o lose_v eternal_a life_n command_v not_o only_o eat_v but_o also_o drink_v perchance_o your_o majesty_n do_v not_o stand_v much_o upon_o this_o as_o not_o believe_v that_o chapter_n of_o saint_n john_n to_o concern_v the_o sacramental_a sumption_n of_o our_o saviour_n flesh_n as_o also_o some_o learned_a catholics_n hold_v notwithstanding_o though_o we_o grant_v that_o chapter_n to_o concern_v the_o eat_n and_o drink_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o most_o of_o the_o father_n teach_v yet_o this_o objection_n may_v be_v easy_o satisfy_v by_o the_o former_a principle_n for_o as_o we_o distinguish_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o substance_n &_o the_o manner_n the_o substance_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o manner_n in_o both_o kind_n by_o formal_a eat_n and_o drink_v so_o the_o same_o distinction_n be_v to_o be_v make_v in_o our_o saviour_n precept_n about_o this_o sacrament_n for_o howsoever_o his_o word_n may_v sound_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n yet_o his_o intention_n be_v to_o command_v no_o more_o than_o the_o substance_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o real_o receive_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o may_v be_v do_v under_o one_o kind_n this_o may_v be_v make_v clear_a by_o the_o precept_n our_o saviour_n have_v give_v about_o another_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n baptism_n where_o though_o his_o word_n seem_v to_o define_v the_o manner_n yet_o his_o mind_n be_v but_o to_o determine_v the_o substance_n he_o say_v 28.18_o say_v matt._n 28.18_o to_o his_o apostle_n baptise_v all_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o baptise_v signifyes_n the_o same_o that_o the_o greek_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o be_v not_o to_o wet_v or_o sprinkle_v with_o water_n but_o to_o put_v and_o plunge_v into_o water_n by_o immersion_n bathe_v they_o in_o water_n in_o which_o respect_n baptism_n be_v term_v by_o the_o apostle_n 3.4_o apostle_n tit._n 3.4_o the_o laver_n or_o bathe_v of_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o because_o the_o church_n teach_v baptism_n by_o aspersion_n or_o sprinkle_n to_o be_v sufficient_a &_o substantial_a baptism_n no_o less_o than_o baptism_n by_o immersion_n christian_n must_v &_o do_v interpret_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n baptise_v that_o be_v plunge_v into_o the_o water_n all_o nation_n to_o command_v only_o cleanse_v &_o wash_v in_o substance_n not_o the_o manner_n thereof_o by_o immersion_n as_o his_o word_n may_v seem_v to_o import_v and_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v the_o first_o 600._o year_n practice_n in_o like_a sort_n the_o word_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o be_v preceptive_a no_o further_o than_o they_o signify_v real_a receive_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o the_o manner_n of_o both_o kind_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o commandment_n for_o as_o christ_n give_v this_o precept_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v only_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v have_v life_n in_o we_o so_o likewise_o he_o mean_v to_o command_v the_o same_o no_o further_o than_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o this_o end_n but_o eat_v formal_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o spiritual_a and_o what_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o the_o receive_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n virtual_o as_o be_v by_o concomitancy_n join_v with_o the_o body_n be_v spiritual_a receive_n and_o not_o sacramental_a be_v false_a for_o only_o just_a and_o holy_a man_n receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n spiritual_o but_o wicked_a man_n receive_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n together_o with_o his_o body_n by_o concomitancy_n therefore_o this_o virtual_a receive_n of_o christ_n blood_n be_v corporal_a and_o sacramental_a and_o not_o only_o spiritual_a virtual_o and_o implicit_o his_o blood_n as_o contain_v within_o his_o sacred_a body_n suffice_v that_o we_o may_v have_v life_n in_o we_o as_o he_o promise_v in_o the_o same_o place_n v._o 59_o he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o what_o necessity_n then_o be_v there_o to_o understand_v this_o precept_n of_o formal_a receive_n in_o both_o kind_n but_o further_o i_o add_v the_o coniunctive_a particle_n et_fw-la and_o frequent_o signifyes_n disiunctive_o the_o same_o that_o well_fw-mi or_o as_o argentum_fw-la &_o aurum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la 3.6_o mihi_fw-la act._n 3.6_o and_o particular_o of_o this_o sacrament_n 11.20_o sacrament_n 1._o cor._n 11.20_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o eat_v and_o drink_v damnation_n the_o sense_n be_v disiunctive_a eat_v or_o drink_v unworthy_o in_o this_o sort_n except_o you_o eat_v and_o drink_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v disiunctive_o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n or_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o which_o disiunctive_a sense_n to_o be_v the_o sense_n intend_v in_o this_o place_n may_v be_v prove_v because_o else_o christ_n shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o for_o see_v in_o the_o verse_n 59_o of_o this_o chapter_n he_o promise_v life_n eternal_a to_o eat_v only_o qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la hunc_fw-la panem_fw-la vivit_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la if_o in_o the_o 94._o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o require_v unto_o life_n everlasting_a eat_n and_o drink_v both_o he_o shall_v in_o the_o space_n of_o a_o few_o line_n speak_v contraries_n and_o because_o this_o be_v impossible_a cup._n this_o last_o answer_n be_v true_a &_o may_v be_v invincible_o prove_v by_o scripture_n first_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o in_o scripture_n the_o particle_n et_fw-fr and_o be_v take_v disiunctive_o as_o the_o jesuit_n prove_v in_o the_o text_n &_o the_o minister_n grant_v second_o whensoever_o two_o thing_n be_v require_v to_o one_o &_o the_o same_o end_n for_o which_o each_o a_o part_n be_v sufficient_a than_o the_o particle_n et_fw-fr and_o must_v needs_o be_v understand_v disiunctive_o to_o
straight_o give_v after_o baptism_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o wine_n so_o that_o protestant_n if_o they_o will_v have_v these_o christian_n to_o have_v wine_n they_o must_v out_o of_o their_o own_o liberality_n by_o way_n of_o interpretation_n bestow_v it_o upon_o they_o see_v the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n do_v not_o afford_v it_o they_o church_n they_o the_o minister_n pag._n 507._o object_n that_o sundry_a father_n and_o author_n do_v not_o understand_v these_o place_n about_o christ_n &_o the_o apostle_n mention_v the_o receive_n of_o bread_n without_o wine_n of_o sacred_a communion_n i_o answer_v diverse_a father_n as_o the_o jesuit_n show_v understand_v these_o place_n mention_v communion_n of_o bread_n without_o wine_n of_o sacramental_a communion_n and_o consequent_o they_o hold_v communion_n in_o one_o kind_a to_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o though_o some_o father_n hold_v that_o these_o mention_a communion_n of_o bread_n without_o wine_n be_v not_o sacred_a yet_o their_o reason_n be_v not_o because_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v unlawful_a which_o reason_n yet_o they_o will_v have_v allege_v have_v the_o same_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n to_o this_o apostolical_a practice_n we_o may_v add_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n who_o give_v to_o his_o two_o disciple_n in_o emaus_n the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n fregit_fw-la bread_n luc._n 24._o accepit_fw-la panem_fw-la &_o benedixit_fw-la &_o fregit_fw-la that_o the_o bread_n christ_n give_v be_v eucharistical_a and_o consecrate_a the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n insinuate_v some_o learned_a father_n 25._o father_n aug._n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la consens_fw-la euangel_n c._n 25._o affirm_v and_o the_o miraculous_a effect_n of_o open_v their_o eye_n to_o know_v christ_n and_o to_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n &_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o all_o haste_n confirm_v it_o that_o they_o receive_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o only_a kind_n of_o bread_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o context_n of_o the_o holy_a narration_n which_o say_v that_o upon_o our_o saviour_n break_v and_o give_v they_o bread_n they_o know_v he_o and_o he_o straight_o vanish_v out_o of_o their_o sight_n so_o that_o here_o also_o if_o protestant_n will_v have_v wine_n give_v to_o these_o disciple_n they_o must_v by_o the_o superabundance_n thereof_o in_o their_o exposition_n supply_v the_o want_n thereof_o in_o scripture_n yea_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o place_n be_v hardly_o capable_a of_o that_o exposition_n the_o apostle_n acknowledge_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o very_a fraction_n &_o give_v of_o bread_n and_o our_o saviour_n departure_n in_o the_o same_o moment_n leave_v no_o time_n for_o he_o to_o give_v they_o wine_n after_o the_o bread_n 9_o bread_n beda_n &_o theophil_n in_o lucam_n hier._n in_o epitaph_n paulae_fw-la isych_n l._n 2._o in_o levit._n cap._n 9_o these_o be_v the_o warrant_v that_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n have_v be_v the_o great_a that_o may_v be_v whereby_o appear_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v furnish_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o proof_n in_o this_o point_n in_o which_o she_o do_v seem_v to_o her_o adversary_n to_o be_v most_o forsake_v by_o antiquity_n which_o with_o all_o humbleness_n i_o submit_v to_o your_o majesties_n judgement_n for_o suppose_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_a to_o be_v good_a and_o lawful_a that_o the_o church_n can_v prescribe_v it_o and_o that_o she_o have_v just_a reason_n to_o prescribe_v it_o i_o will_v let_v pass_v without_o proof_n as_o a_o thing_n not_o doubt_v of_o by_o your_o majesties_n excellent_a wisdom_n the_o eight_o point_n work_v of_o supererogation_n special_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v hard_a if_o not_o impossible_a to_o give_v satisfaction_n in_o this_o point_n unto_o any_o that_o be_v not_o aforehand_o persuade_v of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o merit_n rome_n the_o minister_n though_o he_o speak_v rayling_o against_o our_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n yet_o not_o know_v what_o he_o say_v teach_v as_o much_o merit_n as_o we_o do_v he_o grant_n a_o merit_n of_o congruity_n in_o word_n and_o merit_n of_o condignity_n in_o truth_n for_o a_o work_n may_v be_v congruous_a unto_o the_o reward_n two_o way_n first_o mere_o of_o god_n mercy_n and_o goodness_n not_o out_o of_o any_o intrinsical_a worthiness_n thereof_o this_o the_o divines_n term_v merit_n of_o congruity_n or_o of_o mere_a impetration_n second_o the_o work_n may_v be_v congruous_a in_o respect_n of_o intrinsical_a honour_n and_o dignity_n regard_v of_o god_n and_o move_v he_o to_o recompense_v the_o work_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n &_o quantity_n of_o this_o goodness_n this_o be_v proper_o the_o merit_n of_o condignity_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o of_o inward_a congruity_n of_o the_o work_n with_o the_o reward_n now_o that_o the_o minister_n grant_v this_o merit_n of_o inherent_a congruity_n and_o worthiness_n unto_o good_a work_n his_o word_n manifest_a first_o he_o say_v p._n 169._o lin_v 26._o that_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n do_v by_o grace_n give_v true_a inherent_a sanctity_n and_o purity_n unto_o man_n soul_n and_o action_n second_o pag._n 170._o lin_v 26._o that_o good_a work_n be_v a_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n and_o the_o same_o be_v true_o good_a not_o only_o comparative_o but_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o virtue_n three_o pag._n 174._o lin_v 25._o that_o in_o all_o good_a work_n there_o be_v a_o dignity_n of_o grace_n divine_a similitude_n goodness_n and_o honour_n four_o pag._n 174._o lin_v 40._o that_o the_o reward_n of_o good_a work_n be_v call_v a_o crown_n of_o righteousness_n 2._o tim._n 4.8_o because_o it_o be_v bestow_v on_o they_o that_o exercise_n righteousness_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o righteousness_n five_o pag._n 174._o lin_v 18._o that_o god_n in_o give_v the_o reward_n consider_v the_o mind_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o doer_n the_o integrity_n measure_n and_o qvantity_n of_o the_o work_n thus_o much_o the_o minister_n grant_v now_o be_v this_o the_o merit_n of_o mere_a impetration_n &_o extrinsecall_v congruity_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o not_o the_o merit_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n sanctity_n purity_n dignity_n of_o work_n god_n have_v promise_v to_o reward_v they_o with_o regard_n have_v even_o unto_o the_o measure_n and_o quantity_n of_o that_o their_o inherent_a goodness_n surly_a m._n white_a no_o judicious_a protestant_n will_v grant_v thus_o much_o as_o you_o have_v do_v or_o if_o he_o do_v he_o will_v never_o deny_v merit_n of_o condignity_n or_o inherent_a justice_n to_o be_v find_v in_o good_a work_n and_o if_o you_o grant_v unto_o good_a work_n the_o merit_n of_o inherent_a justice_n you_o grant_v the_o thing_n of_o merit_n condign_a which_o grant_v it_o be_v idle_a to_o contend_v about_o the_o name_n special_o see_v the_o title_n of_o merit_n of_o condignity_n be_v not_o define_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n declare_v §._o 1._o this_o doctrine_n be_v much_o mislike_v by_o protestant_n as_o merit_n as_o concern_v merit_n proud_a and_o arrogant_a yet_o not_o so_o much_o mislike_v as_o misunderstand_v their_o dislike_n grow_v from_o misconstruction_n thereof_o for_o catholic_n hold_v that_o no_o work_n be_v meritorious_a with_o god_n of_o it_o own_o nature_n but_o to_o make_v the_o same_o meritorious_a many_o grace_n be_v require_v &_o those_o most_o divine_a &_o excellent_a particular_o these_o seven_o the_o first_o grace_n be_v divine_a preordination_n because_o god_n out_o of_o his_o own_o goodness_n ordain_v man_n and_o his_o action_n unto_o a_o supernatural_a last_o end_n above_o that_o he_o may_v attain_v unto_o by_o mere_a nature_n without_o which_o ordination_n no_o work_n will_v have_v reference_n or_o correspondency_n with_o heavenly_a glory_n the_o second_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o redemption_n by_o christ_n jesus_n without_o who_o we_o and_o our_o work_n be_v defile_v we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n &_o shall_v be_v so_o still_o have_v not_o he_o by_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n appease_v god_n give_v we_o the_o inestimable_a treasure_n of_o his_o merit_n so_o that_o in_o illo_fw-la benedixit_fw-la nos_fw-la deus_fw-la omni_fw-la benedictione_n spirituali_fw-la in_o coelestibus_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la habemus_fw-la redemptionem_fw-la per_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la eius_fw-la secundum_fw-la divitias_fw-la gratiae_fw-la suae_fw-la quae_fw-la superabundavit_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la ephes._n 1.3_o the_o three_o be_v grace_n of_o adoption_n in_o baptism_n whereby_o soul_n be_v supernatural_o beautify_v by_o participation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n whence_o a_o triple_a dignity_n redound_v unto_o work_n one_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n from_o god_n the_o father_n who_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o adoption_n regard_v good_a work_n as_o the_o work_n
modification_n because_o he_o say_v i_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n not_o in_o myself_o but_o in_o he_o that_o strengthen_v i_o philip._n 4.13_o suarez_n say_v that_o the_o inward_a contrition_n inhere_v in_o the_o sinner_n hart_n be_v more_o effectual_a to_o expel_v venial_a sin_n by_o way_n of_o formal_a opposition_n therewith_o than_o christ_n satisfaction_n tamen_fw-la satisfactio_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o ratione_fw-la meriti_fw-la perfectior_fw-la est_fw-la yet_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n be_v more_o perfect_a and_o efficacious_a to_o expel_v sin_n by_o way_n of_o merit_n here_o again_o you_o be_v show_v a_o slanderous_a relatour_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o a_o falsifyer_n of_o author_n neither_o do_v we_o teach_v that_o condign_a satisfaction_n may_v be_v make_v unto_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o offence_n against_o the_o divine_a majesty_n nor_o can_v we_o condign_o satisfy_v his_o just_a anger_n which_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o infinity_n through_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n offend_v but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o temporal_a pain_n in_o which_o respect_n man_n may_v make_v unto_o god_n satisfaction_n just_a condign_a equal_a compensant_fw-la the_o father_n say_v express_o tertullian_n libro_fw-la de_fw-la poenitentia_fw-la christ_n propose_v pardon_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v redeem_a by_o the_o compensation_n of_o penance_n origen_n homil_n 15._o in_o levit._n by_o the_o fruit_n of_o penance_n by_o laborious_a good_a work_n the_o price_n of_o the_o redemption_n of_o sin_n be_v gather_v together_o s._n cyprian_n l_o 1_o epist_n 3._o by_o lamentation_n and_o just_a satisfaction_n sin_n be_v redeem_a s._n hilar._n can_v 4._o in_o matth._n how_o shall_v we_o pay_n the_o last_o farthing_n of_o pain_n unless_o by_o the_o price_n of_o charitable_a deed_n to_o the_o needy_a our_o sin_n be_v redeem_a s._n basil_n orat_fw-la super_fw-la verba_fw-la atende_v tibi_fw-la ipsi_fw-la be_v thy_o sin_n great_a and_o grievous_a thou_o must_v needs_o apply_v against_o it_o much_o and_o frequent_a confession_n bitter_a weep_a long_o &_o laborious_a watch_n continual_a and_o never-interrupted_n fast_v let_v thy_o penance_n be_v equal_a unto_o thy_o sin_n s._n hierom._n in_o cap._n 1._o joelis_fw-la let_v the_o sinner_n compensate_a by_o the_o austerity_n of_o penance_n his_o former_a pleasure_n wherewith_o he_o offend_v god_n and_o in_o epit._n paulae_n the_o body_n must_v be_v punish_v by_o sharp_a entreaty_n which_o have_v be_v long_o enure_v to_o pleasure_n much_o time_n spend_v in_o laugh_v must_v be_v compensated_a by_o continual_a weep_n theodoret_n epitome_n divinorum_fw-la decretor_n c._n de_fw-fr poenit._n even_o the_o wound_n after_o baptism_n be_v curable_a but_o not_o without_o many_o tear_n and_o weep_n and_o mourning_n and_o fasting_n and_o prayng_n and_o by_o pain_n contemper_v unto_o the_o qvantity_n of_o the_o sin_n s._n gregory_n homil_n 20._o in_o euang._n we_o must_v not_o only_o do_v the_o fruit_n and_o work_n of_o penance_n but_o work_v of_o penance_n that_o be_v worthy_a or_o condign_a dignos_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la fructus_fw-la venerable_a bede_n l._n 1._o in_o lucam_n c._n 2._o sacrifice_n unto_o god_n a_o sacrifice_n of_o justice_n that_o be_v be_v so_o angry_a against_o your_o former_a sin_n that_o you_o massacre_v they_o by_o do_v condign_a work_n of_o penance_n punish_v yourselves_o for_o every_o sin_n iust_o as_o much_o as_o condign_a penance_n require_v this_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o justice_n thus_o the_o father_n teach_v prove_v their_o doctrine_n by_o scripture_n whereby_o your_o vanity_n be_v manifest_a who_o think_v to_o elude_v their_o testimony_n by_o the_o distinction_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o satisfaction_n of_o deprecation_n and_o impetrant_fw-la not_o of_o condignity_n and_o compensant_fw-la against_o who_o the_o father_n as_o if_o they_o have_v forseen_v your_o forgery_n oppose_v themselves_o direct_o formal_o and_o in_o term_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o ancient_a father_n that_o have_v not_o teach_v both_o the_o thing_n and_o the_o word_n work_v with_o reference_n unto_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n §._o 5._o but_o i_o suppose_v these_o testimony_n be_v unto_o your_o majesty_n well_o know_v &_o therefore_o in_o this_o propose_a difficulty_n suppose_v the_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n to_o be_v possible_a you_o move_v this_o doubt_n whether_o the_o penitent_n can_v so_o full_o satisfy_v for_o themselves_o as_o their_o satisfaction_n may_v superabound_v and_o be_v refer_v into_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n to_o satisfy_v this_o doubt_n three_o proposition_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v the_o first_o that_o good_a work_n of_o saint_n that_o be_v penal_a and_o afflictive_a do_v not_o only_o merit_v heaven_n but_o also_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n this_o be_v prove_v give_v of_o alm_n for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n be_v meritorious_a witness_n our_o saviour_n himself_o who_o to_o the_o just_a in_o the_o reward_n of_o their_o alm_n will_v give_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 23._o and_o it_o be_v also_o satisfactory_a for_o sin_n witness_n daniel_n who_o give_v this_o counsel_n unto_o the_o babylonian_a king_n 4.24_o king_n daniel_n 4.24_o redeem_v thy_o sin_n with_o almsdeed_n and_o thy_o iniquity_n with_o mercy_n unto_o the_o poor_a and_o saint_n chrysostome_n apost_n chrysostome_n chrysost._n hom_n 25._o in_o act._n apost_n who_o say_v there_o be_v no_o sin_n which_o give_v of_o alm_n can_v cancel_v and_o saint_n cyprian_n eleemosyna_fw-la cyprian_n cyprian_a serm._n d._n eleemosyna_fw-la eleemosynis_fw-la atque_fw-la operibus_fw-la iustis_fw-la delictorum_fw-la flamma_fw-la sopitur_fw-la prayer_n be_v likewise_o meritorious_a with_o god_n our_o saviour_n exhort_v every_o man_n to_o pray_v secret_o in_o his_o closet_n promise_v that_o 6.6.7_o that_o matth._n 6.6.7_o thy_o father_n who_o see_v what_o be_v do_v in_o secret_a will_v reward_v thou_o it_o be_v also_o satisfactory_a for_o sin_n saint_n augustine_n 7â_n augustine_n aug._n enchyr._n c._n 7â_n say_v the_o daily_a prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v satisfy_v for_o their_o quotidian_n &_o light_a offence_n without_o which_o none_o can_v lead_v this_o life_n to_o fast_o be_v meritorious_a when_o it_o proceed_v from_o a_o pure_a hart_n to_o which_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o 6._o of_o saint_n matthew_n promise_v recompense_v and_o that_o it_o be_v penal_a and_o satisfactory_a for_o corporal_a penalty_n the_o fact_n of_o the_o ninivites_fw-la ult._n ninivites_fw-la jonae_fw-la cap._n ult._n show_v abundant_o so_o that_o the_o same_o work_n of_o the_o just_a as_o pious_a do_v merit_n and_o shall_v have_v in_o heaven_n a_o plentiful_a reward_n as_o penal_a do_v satisfy_v and_o obtain_v full_a remission_n of_o the_o temporal_a penalty_n remain_v to_o be_v suffer_v for_o sin_n in_o confirmation_n whereof_o memorable_a be_v the_o say_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n finem_fw-la cyprian_n cypr._n serm_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la circa_fw-la finem_fw-la of_o fervent_a penance_n &_o punition_n of_o the_o body_n qui_fw-la sic_fw-la dâo_fw-la satisfecârit_fw-la etc._n etc._n non_fw-la solùm_fw-la dei_fw-la veniam_fw-la merâbitur_fw-la sed_fw-la coronam_fw-la the_o second_o proposition_n many_o saint_n endure_v more_o penalty_n and_o affliction_n in_o this_o life_n than_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o recompense_n of_o the_o temporal_a pain_n due_a to_o their_o sin_n the_o bless_a virgin_n 120._o virgin_n the_o minister_n rail_v against_o the_o doctrine_n which_o make_v the_o bless_a virgin_n free_a from_o actual_a sin_n be_v discover_v in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 4._o §._o 9_o pag._n 120._o never_o commit_v actual_a sin_n witness_v s._n ambrose_n 118._o ambrose_n ambros._n serm_n ult._n in_o psal._n 118._o term_v she_o ab_fw-la omni_fw-la integram_fw-la labe_fw-la peccati_fw-la and_o s._n augustine_n say_v 36._o say_v aug._n de_fw-fr nat._n &_o grat._n cap._n 36._o plus_fw-fr gratiae_fw-la ei_fw-la collatum_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la vincendum_fw-la ex_fw-la omni_fw-la parte_fw-la peccatum_fw-la yet_o she_o endure_v many_o affliction_n her_o many_o journey_n special_o her_o banishment_n into_o egypt_n her_o stand_v at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o cross_n when_o the_o sword_n of_o sorrow_n pierce_v through_o her_o hart_n beside_o her_o many_o voluntary_a fast_n and_o praying_n and_o other_o penitential_a work_n which_o be_v daily_o practise_v in_o the_o course_n of_o her_o most_o holy_a life_n saint_n john_n the_o baptist_n 8._o baptist_n luc._n 1._o v._n 8._o what_o a_o pure_a and_o immaculate_a course_n of_o life_n hold_v he_o from_o his_o infancy_n in_o the_o wilderness_n never_o commit_v any_o great_a sin_n yea_o scarce_o so_o much_o as_o light_a sin_n as_o the_o father_n c_o father_n gregor_n in_o cap._n 2._o job._n 11._o numquid_fw-la credimus_fw-la aliquid_fw-la fuisse_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o joannis_n vita_fw-la mors_fw-la tergeret_fw-la venerab_n beda_n ho._n de_fw-la decollat_fw-la joan._n quis_fw-la dicere_fw-la audeat_fw-la joannem_fw-la in_o actu_fw-la vel_fw-la dicto_fw-la habitu_fw-la vel_fw-la victu_fw-la peccasse_fw-la quis_fw-la in_o eius_fw-la praecordijs_fw-la esse_fw-la poterat_fw-la peccato_fw-la
so_o contemptible_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n that_o very_o the_o work_n of_o the_o world_n creation_n do_v not_o more_o clear_o discover_v god_n the_o author_n of_o nature_n than_o this_o of_o the_o world_n conversion_n do_v show_v itself_o to_o proceed_v from_o the_o author_n of_o grace_n four_o the_o miraculous_a continuance_n of_o a_o christian_a catholic_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n foretell_v by_o our_o saviour_n notwithstanding_o so_o many_o persecusecution_n by_o the_o jew_n heathen_n heretic_n politician_n and_o dissolute_a christian_n against_o this_o principle_n of_o resolution_n minister_n 15._o minister_n chalenour_n in_o his_o credo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la p._n 1._o c._n 6._o field_n l._n 3._o cap._n 15._o and_o our_o minister_n cite_v minister_n reply_v pag._n â16_n cite_v in_o particular_a object_n that_o miracle_n be_v only_o probable_a &_o not_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o divine_a doctrine_n yea_o 14._o yea_o bellarm._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr eccl._n cap._n 14._o bellarmine_n say_v we_o can_v know_v evident_o that_o miracle_n be_v true_a for_o if_o we_o do_v we_o shall_v know_v evident_o that_o our_o faith_n be_v true_a &_o so_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v faith_n i_o answer_v that_o such_o evidence_n as_o do_v exclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o pious_a reverence_n &_o affection_n unto_o god_n word_n evidence_n i_o say_v enforce_v man_n to_o believe_v can_v stand_v with_o true_a faith_n if_o we_o know_v by_o mathematical_a or_o metaphysical_a evidence_n that_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v true_a perchance_o this_o evidence_n will_v compel_v man_n to_o believe_v and_o overcome_v the_o natural_a obscurity_n and_o seem_a impossibility_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o as_o bellarmine_n say_v we_o can_v be_v mathematical_o and_o altogether_o infallible_o sure_a by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n that_o miracle_n be_v true_a notwithstanding_o we_o must_v not_o deny_v what_o scripture_n affirm_v 36._o affirm_v joan._n 5â_n 36._o that_o miracle_n be_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n bind_v man_n to_o believe_v and_o consequent_o that_o we_o may_v know_v they_o to_o be_v true_a agebantur_fw-la true_a suarez_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la disput_fw-la 4._o sect_n 3._o n._n 9_o videntibus_fw-la constare_fw-la poterat_fw-la evidentia_fw-la naturali_fw-la vera_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la agebantur_fw-la by_o physical_a evidence_n as_o we_o be_v sure_a of_o thing_n we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n or_o of_o such_o as_o be_v once_o evident_a to_o the_o world_n be_v by_o the_o world_n full_a report_n declare_v unto_o us._n neither_o do_v this_o physical_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n take_v away_o the_o merit_n of_o faith_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o evidence_n not_o be_v altogether_o and_o in_o the_o high_a deâree_n infallible_a by_o itself_o for_o our_o sense_n may_v sometime_o be_v deceive_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o overcome_v the_o natural_a obscurity_n darkness_n &_o seem_a falsehood_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o those_o miracle_n for_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o like_v seem_v to_o reason_n as_o impossible_a as_o any_o miracle_n can_v seem_v evident_a unto_o sense_n hence_o when_o faith_n be_v propose_v by_o miracle_n arise_v a_o conflict_n betwixt_o the_o seem_a evidence_n of_o the_o miracle_n and_o the_o seem_a darkness_n and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n against_o which_o obscurity_n a_o man_n can_v get_v the_o victory_n by_o the_o sole_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n except_o he_o be_v inward_o holpen_v by_o the_o light_n of_o god_n spirit_n move_v he_o by_o pious_a affection_n to_o cleave_v to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v by_o so_o clear_a testimony_n prove_v his_o word_n as_o a_o man_n shut_v up_o in_o â_o chamber_n with_o two_o light_n whereof_o the_o one_o make_v âhe_n wall_n seem_v white_a the_o other_o blow_v can_v be_v firm_o resolve_v what_o to_o think_v till_o day_n light_n enter_v &_o obscure_v both_o those_o light_n discover_v the_o truth_n even_o so_o a_o man_n look_v upon_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o the_o light_n of_o christian_a miracle_n do_v to_o prove_v they_o will_v be_v move_v to_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v truth_n but_o look_v upon_o âhem_n through_o the_o evidence_n of_o their_o seem_a impossibility_n unto_o reason_n they_o will_v seem_v false_a nor_o will_v he_o be_v able_a firm_o to_o resolve_v for_o the_o side_n of_o faith_n until_o the_o light_n of_o divine_a grace_n enter_v into_o his_o hart_n make_v he_o to_o prefer_v through_o pious_a reverence_n towards_o god_n the_o so_o propose_a authority_n of_o his_o word_n before_o the_o seem_a impossibility_n of_o man_n reason_n the_o three_o principle_n demonstrate_v §._o 3._o be_v resolve_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n be_v save_v truth_n &_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n we_o meet_v with_o a_o three_o enemy_n who_o labour_v to_o drive_v we_o out_o of_o the_o beat_a high_a way_n to_o know_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n this_o enemy_n be_v the_o heretic_n a_o domestic_a enemy_n and_o therefore_o more_o dangerous_a these_o man_n grant_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v supernatural_a and_o reveal_v the_o reveal_v to_o be_v the_o apostolical_a and_o no_o other_o but_o they_o will_v have_v the_o rule_n of_o know_v what_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n teach_v to_o be_v special_a illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n not_o catholic_a tradition_n for_o there_o be_v a_o double_a kind_n of_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n that_o may_v be_v pretend_v the_o one_o public_a by_o the_o uniform_a perpetual_a teach_n of_o pastor_n the_o other_o secret_a by_o the_o teach_n of_o some_o private_a man_n pretend_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v more_o singular_o and_o high_o than_o other_o man_n by_o the_o apostle_n the_o second_o kind_n of_o tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o secret_a teach_n of_o a_o invisible_a church_n heretic_n have_v pretend_v but_o never_o the_o first_o of_o public_a and_o catholic_a tradition_n the_o cause_n why_o heretic_n prescribe_v the_o course_n to_o resolve_v by_o illumination_n be_v because_o a_o heretic_n will_v not_o admit_v doctrine_n deliver_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o christian_a ancestor_n but_o with_o choice_n receive_v some_o and_o reject_v other_o as_o he_o find_v good_a whence_o he_o have_v the_o electionis_fw-la the_o tertull._n de_fw-fr prescript_n cap._n 6._o haereses_fw-la dictae_fw-la graeca_n voce_fw-mi exinterpretatione_n electionis_fw-la name_n heretic_n that_o be_v one_o who_o be_v his_o own_o carver_n and_o chooser_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n still_o legunt_fw-la still_o augustin_n l._n 7._o de_fw-fr gen._n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr c._n 9_o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la scripturas_fw-la catholicas_n legunt_fw-la pretend_v for_o all_o his_o fancy_n scripture_n understand_v by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o catholic_a tradition_n be_v by_o he_o admit_v as_o a_o rule_n infallible_a to_o know_v what_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n preach_v he_o can_v not_o have_v liberty_n to_o choose_v according_a to_o his_o best_a like_n but_o will_v be_v bind_v accipere_fw-la bind_v nobis_fw-la nostro_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la indulgere_fw-la sed_fw-la ê_n apostoli_fw-la fideliter_fw-la consignarunt_fw-la accipere_fw-la to_o receive_v the_o form_n of_o religion_n make_v unto_o he_o by_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n hence_o against_o this_o way_n of_o catholic_a tradition_n he_o band_v with_o might_n and_o main_n charge_v the_o same_o to_o be_v fallible_a that_o error_n may_v secret_o creep_v into_o it_o teach_v man_n to_o retire_v unto_o the_o inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o only_a secure_a mean_n to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o apostolical_a scripture_n which_o the_o apostolical_a interpretation_n of_o they_o against_o this_o enemy_n be_v the_o three_o principle_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v the_o catholic_a to_o wit_n the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o father_n unto_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o child_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o christian_a religion_n heresy_n that_o be_v private_a election_n and_o choice_n may_v have_v no_o place_n about_o this_o principle_n faith_n be_v resolve_v and_o assure_v by_o a_o three_o perfection_n belong_v to_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prime_a verity_n this_o be_v that_o he_o can_v so_o much_o as_o connive_v unto_o falsehood_n whereby_o he_o become_v any_o way_n accessary_a of_o deceive_a then_o that_o simple_o ready_o religious_o believe_v what_o they_o have_v just_a reason_n to_o think_v to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o there_o be_v just_a and_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o full_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o their_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o
go_n ergo_fw-la god_n be_v the_o prime_a verity_n can_v permit_v catholic_a christian_a tradition_n to_o be_v falsify_v how_o the_o church_n tradition_n be_v prove_v infallible_a independent_o of_o scripture_n §._o 4._o hence_o be_v answer_v the_o common_a objection_n which_o protestant_n make_v that_o tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n make_v by_o man_n be_v fallible_a &_o subject_n to_o error_n for_o they_o may_v deceive_v or_o be_v deceive_v if_o we_o answer_v that_o christian_a catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n be_v infallible_a through_o god_n special_a assistance_n they_o reply_v this_o infallibility_n of_o tradition_n through_o divine_a assistance_n can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o before_o we_o can_v build_v our_o faith_n on_o tradition_n as_o infallible_a we_o must_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o we_o can_v build_v our_o persuasion_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v apostolical_a and_o divine_a on_o tradition_n except_o we_o commit_v a_o circle_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o catholic_a tradition_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v probat_fw-la be_v est_fw-la summus_fw-la gradus_fw-la certitudinis_fw-la humanae_fw-la de_fw-la qua_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la dici_fw-la potest_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la illi_fw-la falsum_fw-la subesse_fw-la suarez_n de_fw-fr gratia_fw-la l._n 9_o c._n 11._o n._n 11._o et_fw-la hoc_fw-la ibid._n probat_fw-la simple_o infallible_a by_o the_o very_a nature_n thereof_o for_o tradition_n be_v full_a report_n about_o what_o be_v evident_a unto_o sense_n to_o wit_n what_o doctrine_n and_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n public_o deliver_v unto_o the_o world_n it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v false_a world_n of_o man_n can_v be_v uniform_o mistake_v and_o deceive_v about_o a_o matter_n evident_a to_o sense_n and_o not_o be_v deceive_v be_v so_o many_o in_o number_n so_o divide_v in_o place_n of_o so_o different_a affectious_a and_o conditious_a it_o be_v impossible_a they_o 28._o they_o neglexerit_fw-la officium_fw-la suum_fw-la villicus_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n quî_fw-la verisimile_fw-la ut_fw-la tot_fw-la &_o tantae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o unam_fw-la fidem_fw-la erraverint_fw-la variasse_n debuerat_fw-la error_n ecclesiarun_n caeterùm_fw-la quod_fw-la apud_fw-la multos_fw-la unum_fw-la invenitur_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la erratum_fw-la sed_fw-la traditum_fw-la tertullian_n de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n 28._o shall_v so_o have_v agree_v in_o their_o tale_n have_v they_o malicious_o resolve_v to_o deceive_v the_o world_n wherefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o what_o be_v deliver_v by_o full_a catholic_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v a_o thing_n by_o the_o traditioner_n first_o devise_v second_o i_o say_v that_o how_o soever_o human_a tradition_n may_v be_v by_o nature_n fallible_a yet_o the_o christian_a catholic_a be_v assist_v of_o god_n that_o no_o error_n can_v creep_v into_o the_o same_o which_o divine_a assistance_n to_o be_v due_a unto_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o perfection_n of_o divine_a verity_n &_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o tradition_n precedent_o &_o independent_o of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o without_o any_o circle_n by_o two_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v the_o same_o we_o before_o touch_v god_n be_v prime_a verity_n can_v connive_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o convey_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n unto_o posterity_n which_o bind_v religious_a believer_n to_o receive_v the_o same_o as_o his_o word_n shall_v secret_o be_v infect_v with_o damnable_a error_n for_o be_v infinite_a verity_n in_o his_o knowledge_n this_o can_v be_v do_v without_o his_o privity_n know_v thereof_o be_v infinite_a veracity_n in_o his_o teach_v the_o truth_n he_o can_v yield_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o convey_v his_o truth_n oblige_v man_n to_o believe_v shall_v imperceptible_o be_v poison_v whereby_o man_n for_o their_o devotion_n unto_o his_o verity_n incur_v damnation_n this_o be_v so_o i_o assume_v but_o the_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n bind_v christian_n to_o who_o it_o be_v deliver_v to_o believe_v the_o same_o as_o god_n word_n this_o i_o prove_v when_o doctrine_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v as_o god_n word_n man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o but_o that_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v as_o god_n word_n unto_o christian_n which_o be_v unto_o they_o sufficient_o propose_v âs_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n now_o that_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_a proposition_n and_o proof_n that_o that_o doctrine_n be_v the_o apostle_n be_v prove_v first_o because_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n be_v by_o nature_n simple_o infallible_a as_o have_v be_v show_v but_o proposition_n know_v simple_o to_o be_v infallible_a be_v sufficient_a to_o bind_v man_n to_o believe_v second_o catholic_a tradition_n that_o be_v the_o report_n of_o a_o world_n of_o ancestor_n concern_v sensible_a matter_n of_o fact_n be_v so_o pregnant_a and_o obligatory_a as_o it_o be_v insolent_a madness_n to_o deny_v it_o in_o so_o much_o as_o even_o tradita_fw-la even_o caluin_n institut_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 8._o n._n 9_o quaerunt_fw-la quis_fw-la nos_fw-la certiores_fw-la fecerit_fw-la à _fw-la moyse_n &_o aliis_fw-la prophetis_fw-la haec_fw-la fuisse_fw-la scripta_fw-la quae_fw-la sub_fw-la eorum_fw-la nominibus_fw-la leguntur_fw-la etc._n etc._n quis_fw-la non_fw-la colaphis_fw-la &_o flagellis_fw-la castistandum_fw-la illum_fw-la insanum_fw-la dicat_fw-la certô_o certiùs_fw-la est_fw-la ipso_fw-la rum_o scripta_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la pervenisse_fw-la ad_fw-la posteros_fw-la quà m_fw-la de_fw-la manu_fw-la in_o manum_fw-la tradita_fw-la caluin_n say_v that_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o tradition_n of_o ancestor_n concern_v the_o author_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v reform_v with_o a_o cudgel_n then_o refute_v by_o argument_n three_o god_n himself_o send_v child_n unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o their_o ancestor_n to_o learn_v of_o they_o the_o sensible_a work_n of_o his_o miraculous_a power_n do_v in_o former_a age_n 32.7_o age_n deuteron_n 32.7_o ask_v thy_o father_n and_o he_o will_v tell_v thou_o thy_o ancestor_n and_o they_o will_v certify_v thou_o four_o the_o proof_n of_o tradition_n be_v so_o full_a and_o sufficient_a as_o it_o convince_v infidel_n for_o though_o they_o be_v blind_a not_o to_o see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v divine_a yet_o be_v they_o not_o so_o void_a of_o common_a sense_n impudent_a and_o obstinate_a as_o they_o will_v deny_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a catholic_a tradition_n to_o be_v true_o christian_n &_o apostolical_a whence_o two_o thing_n be_v evident_a first_o that_o catholic_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o external_a sufficient_a proposition_n and_o a_o convince_a argument_n that_o the_o doctrine_n so_o deliver_v be_v apostolical_a &_o consequent_o divine_a reveal_v doctrine_n second_o that_o heresy_n which_o stand_v against_o this_o tradition_n ãâã_d wilful_a obstinacy_n and_o madness_n and_o worse_o than_o paganism_n the_o second_o argument_n god_n be_v prime_a verity_n bind_v all_o man_n that_o will_v be_v save_v to_o know_v and_o firm_o believe_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n even_o until_o the_o world_n end_n can_v connive_v that_o the_o only_a mean_n to_o know_v this_o doctrine_n perpetual_o and_o ever_o after_o the_o apostle_n decease_n be_v secret_o &_o insensible_o poison_v with_o error_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n this_o be_v âeere_o the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o man_n succeed_v âhe_n apostle_n may_v know_v assure_o what_o scripture_n ând_v doctrine_n they_o deliver_v to_o the_o primitive_a catholic_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a tradition_n by_o world_n âf_a christian_a father_n &_o pastor_n unto_o world_n of_o christian_a child_n and_o faithful_a people_n ergo_fw-la catholic_a tradition_n be_v by_o god_n the_o prime_a verity_n so_o defend_v preserve_v &_o assist_v as_o no_o error_n against_o salvation_n âan_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o same_o &_o consequent_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a notion_n of_o prime_a verity_n independent_o of_o scripture_n that_o catholic_a tradition_n be_v âroved_v to_o be_v infallible_a through_o god_n special_a assistance_n âhe_v difference_n between_o prophetical_a and_o ordinary_a divine_a illumination_n by_o which_o protestant_n cavil_n be_v answer_v §._o 5._o against_o the_o minor_a of_o the_o former_a argument_n protestant_n object_v first_o that_o though_o the_o testimony_n of_o tradition_n be_v a_o good_a 32._o good_a reply_v pa._n 15._o lin_v 32._o moral_n human_a and_o proâable_a proof_n that_o these_o scripture_n be_v by_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v yet_o the_o chief_a ground_n of_o faith_n in_o âhis_n point_n be_v inward_a illumination_n &_o the_o testimony_n âf_n the_o spirit_n speak_v within_o our_o hart_n and_o assure_v ãâã_d of_o the_o truth_n i_o answer_v god_n may_v assure_v man_n of_o âruth_n by_o inward_a inspiration_n two_o way_n first_o by_o the_o ââght_n of_o inward_a teach_n and_o inspiration_n without_o âhe_n mediation_n and_o concourse_n of_o any_o external_a infallible_a ground_n of_o assurance_n second_o by_o the_o light_a
not_o heathenish_a superstition_n and_o though_o the_o minister_n rail_v against_o this_o practice_n with_o many_o bitter_a new_a coin_a phrase_n it_o make_v no_o matter_n for_o what_o wise_a man_n will_v prefer_v word_n before_o proof_n a_o minister_n before_o s._n augustine_n as_o for_o the_o invocation_n of_o s._n felix_n in_o particular_a with_o vow_n and_o oblation_n at_o his_o tomb_n many_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n s._n paulinus_n and_o severus_n sulpitius_n may_v be_v bring_v if_o there_o be_v need_n although_o say_v he_o man_n by_o experience_n see_v this_o to_o be_v true_a yet_o who_o be_v able_a to_o discover_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n why_o in_o some_o place_n such_o miracle_n be_v do_v in_o other_o place_n they_o be_v not_o for_o be_v not_o africa_n store_v with_o shrine_n of_o bless_a martyr_n and_o yet_o do_v we_o not_o know_v any_o such_o miracle_n to_o be_v do_v here_o by_o their_o intercession_n for_o see_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v all_o saint_n have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o cure_v disease_n not_o all_o the_o knowledge_n to_o discern_v spirit_n so_o likewise_o at_o the_o shrine_n of_o all_o martyr_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o do_v because_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o every_o where_o do_v who_o give_v to_o every_o one_o particular_a gift_n according_a to_o his_o pleasure_n this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o pure_a christian_a church_n defend_v by_o the_o learn_a father_n and_o worthy_a divine_a that_o ever_o christianity_n breed_v by_o he_o ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n and_o on_o the_o unsearchable_a course_n of_o the_o divine_a providence_n never_o censure_v nor_o condemn_v by_o any_o father_n we_o need_v not_o fear_v superstition_n in_o seek_v some_o kind_n of_o favour_n &_o benefit_n by_o the_o peculiar_a intercession_n of_o certain_a saint_n special_o see_v this_o be_v usual_a in_o the_o church_n confirm_v by_o many_o miracle_n record_v by_o most_o learned_a saint_n that_o live_v in_o the_o pure_a christian_a age_n s._n aug._n in_o his_o 22._o book_n civet_n c._n 8._o and_o in_o tom_n serm_n fol._n 182._o edit_n lovan_n relate_v the_o history_n of_o two_o cure_v at_o the_o tomb_n of_o saint_n stephen_n at_o hippo_n that_o can_v not_o be_v cure_v at_o any_o other_o shrine_n of_o saint_n alibi_n curari_fw-la non_fw-la potuit_fw-la imo_fw-la facillimè_fw-la potuit_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la curatus_fw-la huic_fw-la loco_fw-la curandus_fw-la divina_fw-la praedestinatione_fw-la seruatus_fw-la saint_n lucy_n go_v on_o pilgrimage_n unto_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n agatha_n for_o help_v of_o her_o mother_n put_v peculiar_a confidence_n in_o her_o intercession_n as_o be_v a_o christian_a virgin_n of_o her_o country_n and_o profession_n s._n justina_n virgin_n be_v by_o the_o devil_n tempt_v against_o virginal_a purity_n flee_v to_o the_o most_o glorious_a of_o virgin_n virginem_fw-la mariam_n rogavit_fw-la ut_fw-la periclitanti_fw-la virgini_fw-la opem_fw-la ferret_n ãâã_d s._n nazianzen_n cypr._n nazianzen_n greg._n nazian_n orat_fw-la in_o s._n cypr._n write_v s._n martinian_n as_o paulinus_n cytherium_fw-la paulinus_n paulin._n epist._n ad_fw-la cytherium_fw-la record_v have_v suffer_v shipwreck_n call_v with_o peculiar_a devotion_n and_o trust_n upon_o s._n paul_n who_o epistle_n he_o do_v high_o honour_n remember_v that_o the_o same_o saint_n yet_o live_v deliver_v a_o hundred_o and_o seaventy_n soul_n from_o the_o like_a peril_n neither_o be_v his_o petition_n frustrate_v notwithstanding_o we_o confess_v that_o herein_o a_o discreet_a mediocrity_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o if_o abuse_n be_v creep_v in_o among_o common_a people_n we_o desire_v they_o shall_v be_v reform_v but_o so_o that_o pare_n away_o the_o abuse_n we_o take_v not_o away_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o pious_a christian_a custom_n for_o we_o can_v expect_v that_o simple_a people_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n will_v not_o sometime_o foolish_o and_o superstitious_o mistake_v which_o when_o it_o happen_v we_o must_v as_o s._n augustine_n 10._o augustine_n august_n de_fw-fr moribus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la c._n 10._o say_v ignorantiam_fw-la instruere_fw-la pertinaciam_fw-la deridere_fw-la concern_v oblation_n make_v unto_o saint_n §._o 7._o the_o seven_o cause_n of_o dislike_n be_v our_o offering_n oblation_n unto_o saint_n which_o your_o majesty_n do_v object_n peculiarly_a as_o do_v to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n i_o answer_v if_o any_o catholic_a shall_v offer_v to_o the_o bless_a mother_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o sacrifice_n any_o the_o least_o thing_n he_o be_v severe_o to_o be_v rebuke_v and_o better_o instruct_v for_o sacrifice_n 12._o sacrifice_n nulli_fw-la martyrum_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsi_fw-la deo_fw-la martyrum_fw-la quamuis_fw-la in_o memorias_fw-la martyrum_fw-la constituimus_fw-la altaria_fw-la augustin_n contra_fw-la faust._n l._n 20._o c._n 12._o be_v a_o religious_a homage_n due_a to_o god_n only_o in_o which_o respect_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v never_o offer_v unto_o any_o but_o unto_o god_n in_o memory_n and_o honour_n of_o saint_n herein_o the_o collyridian_n women-priest_n do_v err_v who_o do_v sacrifice_v a_o wafer-cake_n unto_o the_o bless_a virgin_n which_o kind_n of_o worship_n under_o the_o title_n of_o adoration_n saint_n epiphanius_n 9_o epiphanius_n epiph._n haeres_fw-la c._n 9_o reprove_v allow_v the_o catholic_a worship_n there_o term_v her_o honourable_a virgin_n not_o for_o humane_a or_o civil_a but_o for_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a respect_n true_a it_o be_v that_o in_o catholic_a country_n people_n offer_v monument_n offer_v they_o be_v say_v offer_v unto_o saint_n not_o because_o they_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o immediate_o in_o their_o own_o person_n but_o because_o they_o be_v offer_v at_o their_o shrine_n &_o image_n as_o ornament_n or_o monument_n unto_o saint_n light_n flower_n and_o chain_n not_o as_o sacrifice_n but_o as_o ornament_n to_o set_v forth_o their_o tomb_n and_o shrine_n wherein_o they_o do_v not_o dissent_v from_o antiquity_n nor_o from_o god_n holy_a will_n who_o have_v confirm_v such_o devotion_n by_o miracle_n as_o diverse_a author_n worthy_a of_o all_o credit_n relate_v particular_o s._n augustine_n by_o 4._o by_o caluin_n instit_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 4._o protestant_n allow_v as_o the_o most_o faithful_a witness_n of_o antiquity_n 8._o antiquity_n august_n l._n 22._o the_o civet_n c._n 8._o he_o tell_v of_o a_o woman_n stark_o blind_a that_o recover_v her_o sight_n by_o lay_v to_o her_o eye_n flower_n which_o have_v touch_v the_o shrine_n wherein_o be_v carry_v about_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n s._n stephen_n manifest_a stephen_n the_o minister_n say_v that_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o affirm_v that_o flower_n and_o the_o like_a be_v offer_v unto_o saint_n i_o answer_v if_o offer_v signify_v sacrifice_v neither_o do_v s._n augustine_n mention_v this_o as_o do_v in_o his_o age_n nor_o do_v we_o practice_v it_o in_o we_o but_o if_o offering_n be_v take_v as_o we_o take_v it_o for_o lay_v flower_n and_o other_o such_o thing_n on_o the_o tomb_n of_o martyr_n to_o adorn_v and_o beautify_v their_o shrine_n s._n augustin_n do_v mention_v oblation_n of_o flower_n &_o suck_v like_o ornament_n to_o have_v beme_fw-mi make_v unto_o the_o tomb_n of_o martyr_n &_o this_o devotion_n to_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n as_o be_v manifest_a a_o more_o wonderful_a example_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n he_o relate_v do_v upon_o a_o old_a man_n of_o good_a note_n who_o be_v sick_a &_o ready_a to_o die_v do_v yet_o very_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o leave_v his_o idolatry_n although_o he_o be_v very_o earnest_o move_v thereunto_o by_o his_o child_n that_o be_v zealous_a christian_n his_o son_n in_o law_n despair_a to_o prevail_v by_o persuasion_n resolve_v to_o go_v and_o pray_v at_o the_o tomb_n of_o saint_n stephen_n and_o have_v perform_v his_o devotion_n with_o burn_a affection_n with_o many_o groan_n and_o tear_n be_v to_o depart_v take_v with_o he_o some_o flower_n that_o be_v on_o the_o shrine_n and_o lay_v they_o secret_o under_o his_o father_n in_o law_n his_o head_n the_o night_n as_o he_o go_v to_o sleep_v behold_v the_o old_a man_n next_o morning_n awake_v out_o of_o his_o sleep_n cry_v out_o desire_v they_o to_o go_v straight_o to_o call_v the_o bishop_n to_o baptize_v he_o he_o have_v his_o desire_n he_o be_v baptize_v afterward_o as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v he_o have_v this_o prayer_n in_o his_o mouth_n lord_n jesu_n receive_v my_o spirit_n be_v altogether_o ignorant_a that_o prayer_n be_v the_o prayer_n &_o last_o speech_n of_o saint_n stephen_n when_o he_o be_v stone_v to_o death_n by_o the_o jew_n which_o also_o be_v the_o last_o word_n of_o this_o happy_a old_a man_n for_o not_o long_o after_o pronounce_v those_o word_n he_o give_v up_o his_o soul_n other_o oblation_n also_o catholic_n use_v to_o offer_v unto_o saint_n not_o as_o sacrifice_n but_o as_o memory_n &_o monument_n
of_o benefit_n receive_v as_o picture_n of_o lymms_n by_o saint_n prayer_n miraculous_o cure_v that_o therein_o they_o do_v not_o deflect_v from_o ancient_a christian_a devotion_n and_o that_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o her_o best_a time_n use_v universal_o to_o make_v such_o oblation_n theodoret_n 8._o theodoret_n theodoret._n de_fw-fr curandis_fw-la graecorum_n affect_v l._n 8._o be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n who_o write_v against_o the_o gentill_n allege_v as_o a_o manifest_a sign_n of_o christ_n godhead_n and_o omnipotency_n that_o idol_n be_v exclude_v he_o bring_v in_o martyr_n to_o be_v honour_v in_o their_o room_n not_o superstitious_o as_o god_n but_o religious_o as_o divine_a man_n and_o god_n special_a friend_n christian_n people_n say_v he_o present_v themselves_o unto_o martyr_n not_o as_o unto_o god_n but_o as_o unto_o the_o martyr_n of_o god_n and_o divine_a man_n invocate_a &_o beseech_v they_o to_o be_v intercessor_n for_o they_o unto_o god_n and_o those_o that_o pious_o and_o with_o faith_n pray_v obtain_v what_o they_o desire_v as_o testify_v the_o oblation_n which_o they_o be_v thereunto_o bind_v by_o their_o vow_n present_v in_o the_o chapel_n be_v of_o saint_n as_o token_n of_o health_n recover_v for_o some_o hang_v up_o image_n of_o eye_n other_o of_o ear_n other_o of_o hand_n some_o make_v of_o gold_n some_o make_v of_o silver_n they_o silver_n the_o minister_n also_o here_o deny_v that_o these_o ancient_a christian_n do_v offer_v these_o oblation_n at_o the_o shrine_n of_o martyr_n in_o token_n of_o gratitude_n for_o benefit_n receve_v whereas_o theodoret_n say_v express_o that_o they_o be_v vow_n which_o they_o have_v make_v and_o be_v bind_v to_o pay_v unto_o the_o martyr_n that_o be_v unto_o their_o shrine_n as_o monument_n of_o their_o power_n in_o cure_v they_o thus_o he_o so_o general_a and_o notorious_a even_o unto_o infidel_n be_v this_o christian_a devition_n the_o roman_a church_n set_v form_n of_o prayer_n without_o cause_n mislike_v §._o 8._o final_o protestant_n dislike_v the_o circumstance_n of_o pray_v in_o a_o set_a form_n unto_o saint_n and_o that_o we_o appoint_v a_o particular_a office_n unto_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n degree_n church_n the_o minister_n pag._n 353._o bring_v prayer_n use_v in_o the_o roman_a missall_n as_o though_o they_o be_v absurd_a call_v upon_o the_o sweet_a name_n of_o mary_n saint_n intercede_v we_o may_v deserve_v to_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o necessity_n the_o saint_n merit_v intercede_v lord_n absolve_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n i_o answer_v all_o these_o speech_n be_v the_o very_a word_n use_v by_o the_o full_a consent_n of_o ancient_a father_n as_o you_o may_v find_v in_o the_o five_o demonstration_n do_v the_o minister_n expect_v that_o for_o fear_n at_o his_o rail_n we_o shall_v leave_v all_o antiquity_n we_o must_v not_o do_v so_o nor_o do_v we_o nor_o may_v we_o fear_v the_o bitterness_n of_o man_n tongue_n in_o so_o high_a degree_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o primer_n or_o office_n so_o term_v of_o our_o lady_n be_v not_o a_o office_n proper_o and_o principal_o direct_v unto_o she_o but_o a_o office_n contain_v praise_n of_o god_n take_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n wherein_o commemoration_n of_o she_o be_v make_v so_o as_o i_o dare_v say_v that_o the_o prayer_n of_o that_o office_n of_o our_o lady_n that_o be_v direct_v unto_o she_o make_v not_o the_o hundred_o part_n thereof_o and_o see_v it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o her_o best_a time_n do_v frequent_o pray_v unto_o saint_n what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o think_v that_o in_o her_o set_a form_n of_o prayer_n she_o do_v not_o use_v to_o crave_v their_o intercession_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a pious_a and_o profitable_a when_o we_o pray_v unto_o god_n to_o pray_v also_o to_o saint_n by_o their_o mediation_n offer_v our_o prayer_n to_o he_o why_o shall_v any_o mislike_v the_o do_v of_o this_o in_o a_o set_a form_n that_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o church_n why_o shall_v this_o displease_v rather_o than_o a_o extemporal_a form_n but_o further_o we_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n in_o her_o best_a professor_n best_a the_o minister_n here_o question_v our_o meaning_n by_o the_o word_n primitive_a i_o answer_v that_o we_o hold_v that_o true_a christian_a religion_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a shadow_n that_o vanish_v away_o in_o a_o trice_n but_o that_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_v thereof_o continue_v in_o the_o world_n after_o their_o decease_n this_o religion_n in_o respect_n of_o be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v primitive_a in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o they_o that_o see_v the_o apostle_n and_o be_v convert_v by_o they_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o free_a public_a profession_n the_o same_o be_v never_o primitive_a till_o the_o four_o age_n that_o be_v under_o constantine_n now_o the_o monument_n of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n in_o regard_n of_o persecution_n be_v few_o &_o many_o christian_a history_n &_o monument_n yea_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o be_v make_v away_o by_o dioclesian_n so_o that_o the_o best_a way_n to_o know_v what_o religion_n be_v profess_v immediate_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o examine_v what_o form_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n come_v from_o under_o ground_n &_o secret_a meeting_n into_o the_o free_a view_n of_o the_o world_n for_o no_o doubt_n but_o that_o religion_n be_v free_o profess_v under_o constantine_n that_o be_v cruel_o persecute_v and_o the_o monument_n thereof_o abolish_v by_o dioclesian_n constantine_n his_o predecessor_n and_o the_o other_o pagan_a emperor_n before_o he_o but_o the_o christian_a profession_n of_o constantine_n age_n be_v so_o clear_o catholic_a as_o our_o minister_n fear_v trial_n thereby_o and_o will_v rather_o have_v all_o reduce_v unto_o those_o age_n whereof_o the_o monument_n be_v scarce_o for_o therein_o they_o hope_v to_o find_v best_a patronage_n for_o their_o negative_a religion_n and_o for_o their_o invisible_a perpetual_a nameless_a notorious_a professor_n time_n do_v pray_v unto_o saint_n in_o set_a form_n as_o catholic_n now_o do_v even_o with_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n acknowledge_v &_o confess_v by_o the_o magdeburgians_n cent._n 4._o c._n 4._o to_o have_v be_v in_o use_n even_o in_o the_o four_o age_n after_o christ_n in_o which_o the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n be_v hold_v but_o if_o they_o will_v perchance_o say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o dislike_v set_v form_n unto_o saint_n as_o some_o phrase_n or_o speech_n in_o our_o prayer-booke_n that_o seem_v to_o give_v too_o much_o unto_o creature_n as_o our_o call_v the_o bless_a virgin_n mother_n of_o grace_n mother_n of_o mercy_n say_v to_o she_o lady_n protect_v we_o from_o the_o devil_n receive_v we_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n give_v light_n to_o the_o blind_a pardon_v to_o the_o guilty_a remove_v from_o we_o all_o evil_a etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v these_o speech_n can_v just_o be_v dislike_v because_o they_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o pious_a sense_n know_v to_o catholic_n a_o sense_n obvious_a &_o plain_a according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n and_o which_o the_o word_n may_v well_o bear_v even_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o speech_n the_o nature_n of_o thing_n be_v various_a and_o the_o answerable_a conceit_n of_o man_n copious_a but_o word_n to_o express_v such_o conceyt_v scant_a and_o in_o great_a paucity_n necessity_n do_v enforce_v we_o to_o use_v word_n applyable_a to_o diverse_a sense_n for_o example_n one_o man_n may_v deliver_v another_o from_o death_n either_o by_o authority_n pardon_v he_o as_o do_v king_n or_o by_o justice_n defend_v he_o as_o do_v advocate_n by_o force_n take_v he_o out_o of_o his_o enemy_n hand_n as_o do_v soldier_n or_o pay_v his_o ransom_n to_o they_o that_o keep_v he_o captive_a as_o almoner_n final_o by_o beg_v his_o life_n of_o they_o that_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o away_o as_o intercessor_n these_o be_v very_o different_a way_n of_o relief_n yet_o have_v we_o but_o one_o word_n to_o express_v they_o all_o to_o wit_n to_o save_v a_o man_n life_n which_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o subject_n it_o be_v apply_v and_o if_o man_n want_v understanding_n or_o will_v not_o take_v our_o word_n according_a to_o the_o matter_n they_o be_v apply_v unto_o there_o can_v never_o want_v cavil_n unless_o we_o either_o speak_v not_o at_o all_o or_o when_o we_o speak_v still_o use_v long_a circumlocution_n which_o be_v ridiculous_a &_o in_o verse_n impossible_a the_o metre_n not_o permit_v it_o and_o yet_o the_o aforesaid_a mislike_v phrase_n in_o the_o office_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v